350._o say_v grec_n say_v in_o thesauro_fw-la ut_fw-la d._n thocitat_fw-la in_o opusculo_fw-la de_fw-la erroribus_fw-la grec_n we_o ougth_v to_o stick_v to_o our_o head_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n it_o pertain_v unto_o all_o to_o ask_v of_o he_o what_o to_o believe_v &_o what_o to_o hold_v s._n chrysostome_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v joannem_fw-la say_v homil_n ult._n in_o joannem_fw-la s._n peter_n be_v a_o master_n place_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o our_o saviour_n tertullian_n anno_fw-la 200_o say_v haeret_fw-la say_v lib_n de_fw-fr prescript_n haeret_fw-la that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o dispute_v with_o heretic_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n because_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o scripture_n be_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n therefore_o it_o ought_v first_o to_o be_v manifest_a what_o be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o this_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v better_o know_v then_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o chief_a where_n of_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n s._n cyprian_n anno_fw-la 240._o say_v 1._o say_v lib._n 1._o epist_n 1._o that_o heresy_n and_o schism_n spring_v from_o neither_o cause_n then_o because_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n be_v not_o obey_v nor_o one_o priest_n for_o the_o time_n in_o the_o church_n &_o judge_v in_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n be_v think_v on_o s_o ambrose_n anno_fw-la 380._o 10_o 380._o epist_n 10_o writing_n to_o the_o eemperour_n valent_n ne_o the_o young_a who_o be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o arrian_n will_v judge_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n say_v but_o certain_o if_o we_o observe_v either_o the_o order_n of_o devyne_fw-mi scripture_n or_o the_o course_n of_o ancient_a time_n who_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o bishop_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o say_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v wont_a to_o judge_v of_o christian_a emperor_n that_o be_v of_o their_o faith_n and_o not_o emperor_n of_o bishop_n that_o be_v of_o their_o faith_n thy_o father_n a_o man_n of_o ripe_a age_n say_v it_o be_v long_v not_o unto_o i_o to_o judge_v of_o bishop_n now_o thy_o clemency_n say_v i_o ought_v to_o judge_v et_fw-la infra_fw-la if_o there_o be-any_a thing_n to_o be_v handle_v concern_v faith_n that_o conference_n do_v belong_v unto_o priest_n as_o it_o be_v do_v under_o constantine_n a_o prince_n of_o famous_a memory_n &_o heir_n of_o thy_o father_n dignity_n but_o what_o have_v be_v well_o begin_v be_v other_o wise_a consummate_v for_o bisthop_n do_v first_o give_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n but_o when_o some_o will_v judge_v of_o faith_n with_o in_o their_o palace_n they_o do_v effect_n by_o circumuension_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v change_v s._n hierome_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v damasum_fw-la say_v in_o epist_n ad_fw-la damasum_fw-la i_o beseech_v your_o holiness_n the_o pope_n by_o christ_n crucify_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o holy_a trinity_n that_o there_o be_v authority_n give_v i_o by_o your_o letter_n either_o that_o i_o council_n or_o affirm_v three_o hypostasis_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v jovin_n say_v lib._n 1._o count_v jovin_n out_o of_o twelve_o one_o be_v choose_v that_o a_o head_n be_v constitute_v occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o s._n augustine_n anno_fw-la 400_o say_v 23._o say_v lib._n 1._o cont_n crescovium_fw-la cap._n 23._o whosoever_o do_v fear_n to_o be_v deceive_v through_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n let_v he_o ask_v council_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v demonstrate_v with_o out_o any_o ambiguity_n or_o doubt_v and_o again_o 5._o again_o count_n epist_n fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 5._o but_o i_o say_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o compel_v i_o there_o be_v many_o more_o of_o this_o kind_n which_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o omit_v not_o doubt_v but_o these_o may_v suffice_v only_o receive_v this_o testimony_n from_o s._n austin_n that_o these_o father_n do_v not_o teach_v any_o new_a opinion_n or_o doctrine_n of_o their_o own_o but_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n itself_o pelagianum_n itself_o lib._n 2._o cont_n julianun_n pelagianum_n the_o ancient_a father_n say_v he_o seek_v not_o friendship_n with_o we_o or_o you_o nor_o yet_o be_v at_o enmity_n with_o either_o of_o we_o with_o we_o or_o you_o they_o be_v not_o offend_v neither_o do_v they_o pity_v either_o of_o we_o but_o what_o they_o find_v in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o hold_v what_o they_o have_v learned_a that_o they_o teach_v what_o themselves_n have_v learned_a of_o their_o forefather_n the_o same_o they_o deliver_v to_o their_o child_n for_o heretic_n allege_v of_o authority_n or_o scripture_n for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o say_n of_o s._n cyprian_n may_v suffice_v 9_o suffice_v de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 9_o o_o corruptor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o false_a interpreter_n the_o first_o word_n thou_o put_v down_o but_o omitte_v that_o which_o follow_v as_o thou_o thyself_o be_v cut_v of_o from_o the_o church_n so_o thou_o cut_v away_o one_o sentence_n from_o one_o little_a chapter_n the_o 7._o article_n scripture_n never_o call_v in_o question_n among_o catholic_n a_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n josue_n ruth_n 4._o book_n of_o king_n paralapomenon_n 2._o book_n of_o esdras_n &_o nehemias_n sob_n the_o psalter_n of_o 150._o psalm_n proverbe_n ecclesiastes_n canticle_n 4._o great_a prophet_n 12_o lesser_a 4_o evangelist_n the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 13._o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n beside_o that_o to_o the_o hebrew_n to_o other_o epistle_n one_o of_o s._n peter_n the_o other_o of_o s._n john_n the_o 8._o article_n scripture_n some_o time_n call_v in_o question_n b_o hester_n baruch_n part_n of_o daniel_n toby_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la first_o &_o secund_a of_o machabee_n certain_a part_n of_o s_o mark_n luke_n &_o john_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n the_o last_o of_o s_o peter_n the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n part_n of_o the_o first_o of_o s._n john_n 2._o &_o 3._o of_o s_o john_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n but_o now_o all_o prove_v to_o to_o canonical_a the_o 9_o article_n scripture_n never_o admit_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o prayer_n of_o manasses_n 3._o &_o 4._o of_o esdras_n 3._o &_o 4_o of_o maccabee_n psalm_n 151_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o book_n of_o job._n the_o book_n of_o hermes_n call_v the_o pastor_n now_o to_o omit_v all_o out_o adversary_n idle_a objection_n without_o any_o proof_n the_o catholic_n thus_o prove_v his_o scripture_n s._n austin_n say_v 8._o say_v de_fw-fr doctrine_n christiana_n l._n 2_o c._n 8._o the_o who_o cannon_n of_o scripture_n be_v contain_v in_o these_o book_n the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n etc._n etc._n job_n toby_n hester_n âââ¦h_n and_o the_o 2._o book_n of_o maccabee_n twoe_o book_n of_o esâââ¦as_n &c_n &c_n and_o these_o 2._o book_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v call_v wisdom_n the_o other_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la for_o a_o certain_a similitude_n call_v the_o book_n of_o solomon_n for_o it_o be_v most_o certain_o affirm_v that_o âeâus_o the_o son_n of_o syrach_n do_v write_v they_o which_o not_o withstand_v because_o they_o be_v think_v worthy_a of_o authority_n they_o be_v to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o prophet_n the_o rest_n be_v etc._n etc._n these_o s._n austin_n also_o the_o three_o council_n of_o charthage_n at_o which_o s._n austin_n be_v present_a say_v see_v say_v cinou_n 47._o see_v the_o like_a account_n by_o innocent_a &_o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la exit_fw-la âpârum_fw-la and_o selasius_n tom_n 1_o council_n in_o decret_a with_o 7â_n bâsâââ_n by_o ischâ_n l_o â_o ââââolog_fw-la c_o 1_o by_o rabânus_n l._n 2._o instit_fw-la clericorum_fw-la &_o by_o cassiodââ_n l_o 2._o dââm_fw-mi lâctâonen_fw-mi see_v it_o be_v think_v good_a that_o nothing_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n under_o the_o name_n of_o devyne_a scripture_n beside_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v genesis_n exodus_fw-la leviticus_fw-la &c_n &c_n the_o five_o book_n of_o solomon_n etc._n etc._n toby_n judith_n hester_n 2._o book_n of_o esdras_n 2_o book_n of_o maccabee_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o out_o aduersaties_n object_n that_o articanun_n that_o origen_n in_o eo_fw-la ad_fw-la julium_n articanun_n origen_n leviticum_fw-la origen_n hom_n 1._o in_o leviticum_fw-la epiphamus_n &c_n &c_n s._n hierome_n affirm_v the_o maccabee_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la toby_n and_o other_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v apocryphal_a it_o be_v answer_v there_o unto_o first_o that_o the_o father_n in_o those_o place_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o there_o own_o opinion_n but_o do_v only_o repeat_v what_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o what_o book_n they_o think_v canonical_a these_o three_o father_n do_v defend_v
such_o miracle_n fol_z 251._o 43_o our_o adversary_n oppose_v father_n against_o father_n answer_v fol._n 255._o 44_o our_o adversary_n general_n abiur_v the_o father_n and_o condemn_v their_o doctrine_n fol._n 257._o 45_o the_o continual_a purity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n acknowledge_v by_o our_o adversary_n fol._n 261._o 46_o the_o catho_n of_o rom._n faith_n now_o teach_v be_v acknowledge_v by_o 47_o protestant_n for_o sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n 264._o 48_o a_o testimony_n from_o the_o enemy_n be_v of_o great_a account_n fol._n 165._o 49_o of_o the_o purity_n or_o rather_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n fol._n 266._o 40_o of_o heretic_n impudency_n fol._n 268._o 51_o heretic_n raylinge_n one_o against_o a_o other_o fol._n 274._o the_o death_n of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n 181._o to_o confirm_v these_o article_n i_o will_v use_v this_o triple_a probation_n scripture_n the_o father_n or_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n himself_o and_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o evident_a that_o the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o brainsick_a invention_n compose_v of_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n and_o also_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o repugnant_a your_o new_a reformer_n luther_n and_o caluin_n be_v in_o doctrine_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n i_o have_v under_o every_o chief_a article_n adjoin_v their_o doctrine_n with_o the_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n from_o whence_o they_o derive_v it_o also_o for_o your_o better_a satisfaction_n i_o have_v here_o next_o follow_v place_v a_o true_a catalogue_n of_o the_o pop_z of_o rome_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o may_v certify_v you_o the_o age_n and_o time_n when_o thing_n be_v do_v so_o that_o to_o say_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o church_n do_v err_v be_v frivolous_a for_o choose_v your_o time_n wherein_o you_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v most_o pure_a yea_o even_o whilst_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o live_v you_o shall_v here_o find_v it_o prove_v both_o by_o the_o doctor_n and_o whole_a church_n of_o that_o age_n and_o likewise_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o learned_a minister_n you_o have_v have_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n now_o teach_v be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o then_o general_o hold_v in_o god_n church_n for_o the_o true_a apostolic_a faith_n but_o that_o my_o oil_n be_v not_o all_o in_o waste_n read_v with_o humility_n and_o prayer_n that_o god_n will_v assist_v you_o for_o s._n paul_n say_v 7.7_o 1._o cor._n 3.6_o jac._n 1.6_o matt._n 7.7_o i_o plant_v apollo_n water_v but_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n and_o s._n james_n say_v god_n give_v abundant_o to_o all_o yea_o our_o saviour_n himself_o bide_v you_o ask_v and_o if_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o wherefore_o there_o only_o rest_v on_o your_o part_n that_o you_o ask_v with_o all_o sincerity_n and_o purity_n of_o hart_n not_o draw_v away_o or_o lead_v with_o any_o prejudicate_a opinion_n or_o sinister_a respect_n this_o s_o james_n crave_v of_o you_o where_o he_o bide_v you_o ask_v in_o say_v nothing_o doubt_v that_o be_v with_o a_o fervent_a desire_n and_o true_a zeal_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o his_o service_n ready_a to_o embrace_v and_o prefer_v it_o before_o all_o the_o world_n a_o true_a catalogue_n of_o the_o pop_z of_o rome_n matth._n 16.18_o etc._n etc._n and_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o because_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o roke_n will_v i_o buyld_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o what_o soever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v one_o earth_n shalhe_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o what_o soever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v one_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n order_n year_n of_o christ_n govern_v year_n montes_fw-la day_n 1_o 44_o s._n peter_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n 24_o 5_o 2_o 2_o 57_o s._n linus_n martyr_n peter_n yet_o live_a 11_o 2_o 12_o 3_o 68_o s._n clement_n mart._n the_o first_o after_o the_o 9_o 3_o 26_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr death_n of_o saint_n peter_n  _fw-fr 4_o  _fw-fr 4_o 77_o s._n cletus_n martyr_n 6_o 5_o  _fw-fr 5_o 84_o s._n anacletus_fw-la martyr_n 12_o 2_o 17_o 6_o 97_o s._n euaristus_n martyr_n 13_o 3_o 7_o 106_o s._n alexander_n martyr_n 7_o 5_o 19_o 8_o 117_o s._n sixtus_n martyr_n 9_o 10_o 9_o 9_o 127_o s._n telesphorus_n martyr_n 11_o 8_o 8_o 10_o 139_o s_n higinius_n martyr_n 4_o 11_o 143_o s._n pius_fw-la i._o martyr_n 11_o 5_o 15_o 12_o 154_o s._n anicetus_n martyr_n 8_o 8_o 14_o 13_o 161_o s._n soter_n martyr_n 7_o 11_o 18_o 14_o 173_o s._n eleutherius_fw-la mart._n england_n 2._o convert_v 15_o 13_o 15_o 186._o s._n victor_n i_o martyr_n 12_o 1_o 28_o 16_o 198._o s._n zepherinus_n martyr_n 10_o 17_o 17_o 218._o s._n calixtus_n i_o martyr_n 6_o 1_o 13_o 18_o 224._o s._n vrban_n martyr_n 7_o 7_o 5_o 19_o 232._o s._n pontianus_n martyr_n 5_o 5_o 2_o 20_o 236._o s._n antherus_n martyr_n 1_o 14_o 21_o 2â7_n s._n fabian_n martyr_n 14_o 4_o 22_o 251_o s._n cornelius_n martyr_n 2_o 5_o 29_o 23_o 253._o s._n lucius_n martyr_n 1_o 4_o 14_o 24_o 255._o s_o stephan_n i._n martyr_n 3_o 3_o 24_o 25_o 258._o s._n sixtus_n ii_o martyr_n 1_o 11_o 3_o 26_o 260._o s_o dionysius_n i._n martyr_n 9_o 4_o 5_o 27_o 270_o s._n foelix_n martyr_n 4_o 5_o 28_o 274_o s._n eutichian_a martyr_n 9_o 6_o 9_o 29_o 283._o s._n caius_n martyr_n 12_o 4_o 6_o 30_o 295_o s._n marcellinus_n martyr_n 7_o 11_o 19_o 31_o 304._o s._n marcellus_n i._o martyr_n 4_o 6_o 21_o 32_o 308._o s._n eusebius_n martyr_n 2_o 7_o 27_o 33_o 310._o s._n melchiade_n martyr_n 3_o 2_o 34_o 314._o s._n sylvester_n 1_n 21_o 4_o 35_o 336._o s._n mark_v 8_o 22_o 36_o 336._o s._n julius_n 14_o 5_o 19_o 37_o 351._o s_o liberius_n 15_o 10_o 18_o 38_o 373._o s._n damasus_n 16_o 2_o 10_o 39_o 38â_n s._n siticius_n 15_o 1_o 10_o 40_o 398._o s._n anastasius_n 4_o 1_o 13_o 41_o 402._o s._n innocent_a 15_o 2_o 10_o 42_o 417._o s._n zozumus_n 2_o 4_o 7_o 43_o 420._o s._n boniface_n 1_n 3_o 9_o 28_o 44_o 423._o s._n caelestinus_n 1_n 8_o 5_o 3_o 45_o 432._o s._n sixtus_n 3_o 7_o 11_o 46_o 440._o s._n leo_n the_o great_a 20_o 11_o 2_o 47_o 461_o s._n hilary_n 6_o 3_o 9_o 48_o 467._o s._n simplicius_n 14_o 6_o 14_o 49_o 482_o s._n faelix_fw-la ii_o 11_o 11_o 18_o 50_o 494_o s._n gelasius_n 2_o 8_o 26_o 51_o 496_o s._n anastasius_n ii_o 1_o 11_o 12_o 52_o 498_o s._n simmachus_n 15_o 7_o 16_o 53_o 514_o s._n hormisda_n 9_o 11_o 54_o 523_o s._n john_n i._o 2_o 9_o 14_o 55_o 526_o s._n faelix_fw-la iii_o 4_o 2_o 18_o 56_o 530_o boniface_n ii_o 1_o 2_o 57_o 532_o john_n ii_o 2_o 4_o 6_o 58_o 534_o s._n agapetus_n 1_o 1_o 59_o 535_o s._n siluerius_n 1_o 5_o 12_o 60_o 537_o vigilius_n 17_o 16_o 26_o 61_o 555_o s._n pelagius_n 9_o 10_o 28_o 62_o 566_o s._n john_n iii_o 10_o 15_o 63_o 577_o s._n benedict_n i._o 3_o 2_o 15_o 64_o 580_o s._n pelagius_n ii_o 9_o 2_o 20_o 65_o 590_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a 1_o 6_o 8_o 66_o 604_o sabinian_n 13_o 5_o 9_o 67_o 60â_n s._n boniface_n iii_o 1_o 2_o 28_o 68_o 608_o s._n boniface_n iv_o 6_o 8_o 13_o 69_o 614_o s._n deusdedit_n 3_o 23_o 70_o 6â8_n s._n bonifice_fw-la v._o 3_o 9_o 19_o 71_o 622_o honorius_n i._o 1_o 3_o 17_o 72_o 635_o severinus_n 1_o 4_o 73_o 638_o john_n iv_o 1_o 9_o 16_o 74_o 640_o s._n theodorus_n 6_o 5_o 18_o 75_o 647_o s._n martin_n i._o martyr_n 6_o 1_o 26_o 76_o 653_o eugenius_n 2_o 9_o â4_n 77_o 657_o vitilianus_fw-la 14_o 5_o 18_o 78_o 672_o adeodatus_n 4_o 2_o 5_o 79_o 676_o domino_fw-la i._o 2_o 5_o 10_o 80_o 679_o agatho_n 3_o 9_o 4_o 81_o 682_o s._n leo._n ii_o 10_o 17_o 72_o 684_o s._n benedict_n ii_o 10_o 17_o 83_o 685_o john_n v._o 1_o 9_o 84_o 686_o cuno_n 11_o 3_o 85_o 607_o sergius_n i._n 13_o 8_o 3_o 86_o 701_o john_n vi_o 3_o 2_o 13_o 87_o 703_o john_n vii_o 2_o 3_o 17_o 88_o 703_o sisinnius_n 20_o 89_o 717_o constantine_n 7_o 1_o 21_o 90_o 735_o gregory_n ii_o 15_o 10_o 21_o 91_o 741_o gregory_n iii_o 10_o 8_o 10_o 92_o 751_o zacharie_n i._o 10_o 3_o 9_o 93_o 752_o stephen_n ii_o 3_o 94_o 752_o stephen_n iii_o 5_o 29_o 95_o 767_o paul_n i._n 10_o 1_o 96_o 778_o stephen_n iv_o 3_o 5_o 27_o 97_o 76â_n adrian_n i._o 13_o 10_o 17_o 98_o 716_o leo._n iii_o 20_o 5_o 18_o 99_o 716_o stephen_n v._o 6_o 24_o 100_o 817_o paschal_n 7_o 3_o 17_o 101_o 824_o eugenius_n ii_o 3_o 6_o â4_n 10â_o 827_o
his_o reply_n pag._n 110._o 106._o melanchthon_n and_o m._n juell_n the_o second_o thou_o all_o civil_a dominion_n be_v forbid_v to_o the_o clergy_n the_o three_o that_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n be_v free_a for_o all_o man_n &_o in_o all_o place_n the_o four_o that_o open_a crime_n be_v in_o no_o wise_n to_o be_v suffer_v for_o avoid_v of_o great_a evil_n so_o evident_o also_o do_v the_o bohemian_o in_o all_o other_o point_n of_o say_v embrace_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n here_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o these_o be_v first_o no_o protestant_n wherein_o our_o aduersaire_fw-fr can_v place_v his_o ever_o visible_a church_n beside_o be_v thus_o as_o they_o affirm_v call_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n extraordinary_o they_o be_v as_o learned_a protestant_n write_v to_o confirm_v their_o new_a doctrine_n by_o sign_n and_o miracle_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n m._n henoch_n 25._o henoch_n sovereign_n remedy_n against_o schism_n pa._n 25._o clanpham_n reprehend_v broune_n in_o that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o a_o extraordinary_a call_n and_o want_v miracle_n luther_n do_v admonish_v to_o this_o end_n sa_v â8_o sa_v in_o loc_fw-la con_fw-mi class_n 4._o c._n 20._o pag._n â8_o search_v whither_o they_o can_v prove_v their_o vocation_n for_o god_n have_v not_o any_o time_n send_v any_o man_n unless_o call_v by_o man_n or_o declare_v by_o sign_n no_o not_o his_o only_a son_n and_o again_o he_o say_v 498._o say_v tom_fw-mi 5._o jon._n germ._n fol._n 498._o from_o whence_o come_v thou_o who_o send_v thou_o &c_n &c_n where_o be_v the_o sign_n that_o thou_o arâ_n send_v by_o man_n where_o be_v the_o miracle_n that_o shall_v testify_v that_o thou_o be_v send_v from_o god_n 7._o god_n adu_n anabpt_v l._n 3._o c._n 7._o bullinger_n say_v to_o the_o anabaptiste_n if_o you_o say_v you_o have_v like_o the_o apostle_n a_o peculiare_a vocation_n prove_v it_o by_o sign_n and_o miracle_n as_o they_o do_v &c._n &c._n but_o this_o you_o will_v never_o do_v therefore_o your_o vocation_n be_v of_o no_o whorth_n yea_o it_o be_v pernicious_a to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n see_v also_o this_o say_n allege_v to_o this_o end_n by_o m._n though_o bell_n in_o his_o x_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n 137._o church_n pag._n 137._o neither_o can_v luther_n or_o any_o of_o our_o adversary_n prove_v their_o own_o vocation_n by_o this_o lawful_a and_o absolute_a testimony_n of_o sign_n and_o miracle_n wherefore_o this_o so_o confess_v probation_n may_v fit_o serve_v a_o against_o themselves_o as_o for_o any_o ordinary_a mission_n certain_o they_o can_v show_v none_o at_o least_o to_o preach_v false_a doctrine_n or_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o give_v they_o authority_n but_o perceive_v their_o weak_a ground_n for_o their_o visible_a church_n they_o fly_v with_o tooth_n and_o nail_n to_o a_o invisible_a church_n though_o quite_o contrary_a to_o all_o scripture_n and_o what_o they_o have_v former_o teach_v the_o protestant_n invisible_a church_n m._n parkins_n say_v â07_n say_v upon_o the_o crede_fw-la pag._n 400._o &_o in_o his_o reform_a caholick_n pa._n 1229_o and_o pag_n â07_n we_o say_v that_o before_o the_o day_n of_o luther_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n a_o universal_a apostasy_n over_o spread_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o our_o church_n be_v not_o then_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o he_o give_v the_o reason_n say_v during_o the_o space_n of_o nine_o hundred_o year_n the_o papish_a heresy_n spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a earth_n m._n fulke_o say_v ecclesiasticis_fw-la say_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o a_o counterfeit_n cath._n pag._n 16._o m._n nap_n upon_o the_o revelation_n pag._n 145._o col_fw-fr 5._o pag_n 191._o 161_o col_fw-fr â_o &_o pag._n 106_o &_o 2_o 7_o &_o 2_o âebast_n in_o epist_n de_fw-fr abrogandis_fw-la in_o universum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la statutis_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la the_o church_n remain_v invisible_a a_o long_a season_n after_o anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 607._o m._n john_n napper_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n have_v possess_v the_o outward_a visible_a church_n of_o christian_n 1260._o year_n god_n true_a church_n most_o certain_o abide_v so_o long_a time_n latent_fw-la and_o invisible_a sebastianus_n francus_n affirm_v that_o for_o certain_a through_o the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n the_o external_a church_n together_o with_o the_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n vanish_v away_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n departure_n and_o that_o for_o these_o thousand_o four_o hundred_o year_n the_o church_n have_v be_v no_o where_o external_a and_o visible_a m._n bround_n say_v 110._o say_v upon_o you_o reve._n fol._n 110._o that_o the_o church_n be_v tread_v down_o and_o oppress_v by_o the_o papacy_n even_o from_o silvester_n time_n unto_o these_o time_n which_o he_o collect_v to_o be_v 1260._o year_n m_o jewel_n say_v the_o truth_n be_v unknown_a at_o that_o time_n and_o unheard_a of_o when_o martin_n luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la first_o come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n bucer_n say_v 110._o say_v upon_o you_o reve._n fol._n 110._o c_o luther_n be_v the_o first_o apostle_n to_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n conradus_n schlusselburge_n say_v 138._o say_v fol._n 12â_n m._n jewel_n apol._n part_n 4._o c._n 4._o divis_fw-la 2_o and_o in_o his_o defence_n an._n 1572_o pag._n 426._o bucer_n in_o ep_n an._n â6_n ad_fw-la episcopum_fw-la iter._n ferd._n schluss_n in_o theolog._n cal._n l_o 2._o fol._n 1_o 0._o mil._n in_o aug_n confess_v explicat_fw-la art_n 7._o de_fw-fr eccl._n pag._n 1._o 7._o 138._o it_o be_v impudency_n to_o say_v that_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o germany_n before_o luther_n do_v hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n georgius_n milius_n say_v if_o there_o have_v be_v right_a believer_n that_o go_v before_o luther_n in_o his_o office_n &c_n &c_n there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o lutheran_n reformation_n therefore_o say_v he_o we_o say_v that_o luther_n be_v tayled_a up_o by_o god_n special_a appointment_n and_o extraordinary_o benedict_n margonstern_n say_v 1525_o say_v tract_n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la pag_n 145_o luther_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la argentinenses_n an._n 1525_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o think_v that_o in_o the_o time_n before_o luther_n any_o man_n have_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n &_o that_o luther_n shall_v receive_v it_o from_o they_o and_o not_o they_o from_o luther_n consider_v say_v he_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n that_o before_o luther_n time_n all_o church_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o more_o than_o chymerian_a darkness_n and_o that_o luther_n be_v divine_o raise_v up_o to_o discover_v the_o same_o and_o to_o restore_v the_o light_n of_o true_a doctrine_n in_o so_o much_o that_o luther_n say_v we_o dare_v boast_v that_o christ_n be_v first_o publish_v by_o us._n the_o example_n of_o elias_n make_v whole_o for_o we_o and_o against_o our_o adversary_n and_o be_v therefore_o by_o they_o either_o ignorant_o mistake_v 19_o mistake_v 3._o king_n c._n 19_o or_o wilful_o misapply_v for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o feere_v the_o face_n 2.3_o face_n v._o 2.3_o of_o jezabell_n wife_n to_o a-aââab_a who_o seek_v his_o life_n he_o lay_v there_o upon_o secret_a in_o a_o cave_n upon_o mount_n i_o horeb_n in_o the_o wilderness_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o foresaid_a complain_v that_o he_o be_v lest_o a_o lone_a the_o which_o he_o then_o utter_v not_o general_o but_o in_o regard_n only_o of_o that_o country_n of_o israel_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o achab_n wherein_o he_o then_o astraunger_n lay_v secret_a as_o appear_v most_o plain_o in_o that_o god_n himself_o according_o answer_v his_o complaint_n with_o like_a respect_n to_o that_o only_a country_n say_v as_o be_v object_v i_o have_v leave_v to_o i_o in_o israel_n seven_o thousand_o etc._n etc._n 18.13_o etc._n 3._o king_n 18.13_o one_o hundred_v whereof_o elias_n himself_o have_v then_o before_o special_a notice_n give_v as_o also_o that_o in_o those_o very_a time_n the_o church_n do_v great_o flourish_v in_o the_o other_o next_o adjoin_v kingdom_n of_o juda_n and_o be_v as_o then_o to_o he_o there_o both_o know_v and_o visible_a under_o twoe_o good_a king_n 22.41.44_o king_n 3._o reg._n 22.41.44_o asa_n and_o josaphat_n who_o reign_v even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o achab._n at_o which_o time_n the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v there_o so_o exceed_v great_a that_o the_o etc._n the_o 2._o chron_n 14_o 8.9_o &_o 17.14_o etc._n etc._n soldier_n only_o be_v number_v to_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o examine_v this_o well_o and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o objection_n be_v solue_v upon_o due_a consideration_n of_o the_o foresay_a premise_n how_o just_o may_v we_o thence_o take_v occasion_n to_o forewarn_v seven_o in_o the_o very_a word_n of_o that_o ancient_a and_o holy_a father_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n who_o live_v in_o
they_o special_o mention_n and_o answer_v this_o very_a objection_n urge_v by_o m._n wotton_n luther_n doctrine_n luther_n say_v 1._o say_v in_o exposit_n euang._n luc._n 16._o domini_fw-la cap._n 9_o a_o festo_fw-la s._n trin._n con_v 1._o i_o will_v not_o give_v no_o not_o apenny_n for_o peter_n merit_n for_o how_o shall_v they_o help_v i_o when_o they_o can_v not_o help_v himself_o for_o what_o soever_o he_o have_v be_v bestow_v upon_o he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n now_o if_o he_o can_v help_v himself_o how_o shall_v he_o do_v any_o thing_n for_o i_o he_o object_v to_o himself_o do_v thou_o say_v that_o good_a work_n be_v not_o to_o be_v do_v for_o respect_n unto_o eternal_a life_n behold_v here_o it_o be_v otherwise_o write_v what_o then_o shall_v we_o do_v he_o answer_v there_o be_v many_o sentence_n in_o scripture_n every_o where_o which_o sound_n of_o our_o merit_n that_o we_o shall_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n by_o good_a work_n 3_o conc._n 3_o but_o there_o take_v heed_n of_o that_o leven_a again_o provide_v yourselves_o treasure_n in_o heaven_n this_o we_o will_v say_v that_o they_o who_o know_v not_o faith_n do_v speak_v &_o think_v as_o well_o of_o reward_n and_o work_n for_o they_o think_v they_o after_o a_o humane_a manner_n that_o they_o shall_v buy_v heaven_n by_o their_o work_n which_o be_v dream_n and_o vain_a cogitation_n these_o luther_n again_o he_o say_v apostolorun_n say_v in_o exposit_n euang._n in_o die_n phil._n &_o jac._n apostolorun_n here_o we_o ought_v to_o learn_v that_o we_o be_v not_o save_v by_o our_o merit_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o merit_n and_o good_a work_n in_o his_o faithful_a and_o he_o who_o do_v give_v force_n unto_o they_o philippe_n melanchthon_n say_v operiââus_fw-la say_v in_o confess_v aug._n &_o eius_fw-la apolog._n art_n 2d_o &_o in_o loc_n comm_n tit_n de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la operiââus_fw-la although_o good_a work_n do_v not_o decerue_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o inheretance_n of_o life_n everlasting_a yet_o they_o merit_v other_o corporal_a reward_n and_o spiritual_a in_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v which_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o explicat_fw-la i_o think_v he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v calvins_n doctrine_n caluin_n say_v 3._o say_v lib._n 1._o instit_fw-la c._n 15._o â_o 3._o first_o i_o must_v meed_n speak_v of_o the_o name_n of_o merit_n whosoever_o therefore_o do_v first_o give_v that_o title_n to_o humane_a work_n compare_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n do_v very_o ill_a or_o little_a respect_n the_o sincerity_n of_o faith_n for_o to_o what_o end_n i_o pray_v you_o be_v that_o name_n of_o merit_n bring_v in_o but_o it_o be_v manifest_a with_o great_a damage_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o great_a offence_n it_o do_v contain_v but_o omit_v the_o name_n let_v we_o take_v a_o view_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o rather_o he_o say_v 3._o say_v ¶_o 3._o what_o our_o work_n do_v merit_n the_o scripture_n teach_v when_o it_o say_v they_o can_v endure_v or_o abide_v the_o sight_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v full_a of_o uncleanness_n 4._o uncleanness_n ¶_o 4._o moreover_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v that_o all_o our_o good_a work_n be_v continual_o sprinkle_v with_o much_o uncleanness_n whereby_o god_n be_v just_o offend_v and_o angry_a with_o we_o so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o reconcile_a we_o unto_o he_o or_o bring_v we_o any_o benefit_n 4._o benefit_n ibid._n c._n 12._o ¶_o 4._o the_o cause_n say_v he_o be_v because_o all_o the_o work_n of_o man_n be_v nothing_o but_o uncleanness_n &_o filth_n and_o that_o which_o be_v vulgar_o esteem_v justice_n be_v mere_a iniquity_n with_o god_n again_o 9â_n again_o c_o 14_o ¶_o 9â_n we_o have_v not_o one_o work_n proceed_v from_o the_o saint_n which_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v in_o itself_o do_v not_o merit_v a_o just_a reward_v of_o reproach_n final_o 11._o final_o ¶_o 11._o there_o have_v be_v no_o work_n at_o any_o time_n of_o any_o godly_a man_n which_o if_o it_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o severe_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v not_o damnable_a m_o foxsaith_n 8_o foxsaith_n act_n mon._n pag_n ââ_o 8_o when_o we_o sin_n we_o diminish_v not_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n all_o the_o danger_n of_o our_o lyve_a be_v the_o evil_a example_n to_o our_o neighbour_n m._n wotton_n say_v 41._o say_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o late_a popish_a art_n p._n 92_o &_o 41._o sin_n be_v pardon_v as_o soon_o as_o commit_v the_o faithful_a person_n at_o once_o have_v for_o givenes_n of_o all_o sin_n past_a and_o to_o come_v so_o dangerous_o do_v they_o seem_v to_o draw_v near_o unto_o libertinism_n and_o bewray_v themselves_o to_o be_v those_o of_o who_o s._n jude_n forewarn_v call_v they_o ungodly_a man_n transfer_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n the_o extenuate_a of_o good_a work_n be_v so_o grateful_a to_o some_o calumiste_n that_o their_o bless_a man_n of_o god_n and_o constant_a martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o so_o he_o be_v term_v by_o 46._o by_o pag._n 46._o biâkley_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o religion_n etc._n etc._n m._n tindall_n be_v careful_a to_o prevent_v all_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n that_o in_o his_o book_n mutule_v the_o wicked_a mammon_n he_o doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v 4ââ_n affirm_v act_n mon._n pag._n 4ââ_n that_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o work_n do_v not_o deserve_v heaven_n 4â6_n heaven_n pag._n 57â_n &_o 4â6_n that_o m._n tindall_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o book_n see_v also_o fox_n 4ââ_n fox_n ibid_fw-la 486_o &_o 4ââ_n which_o sentence_n their_o other_o martyr_n ohn_n teuxbury_n defend_v for_o plain_a enough_o and_o true_a as_o it_o lie_v also_o m._n tindall_n say_v 1ââ6_n say_v ibid._n 1ââ6_n there_o be_v no_o work_n better_o than_o other_o as_o touch_v to_o please_v god_n to_o make_v water_n to_o wash_v dish_n to_o be_v asewter_n or_o a_o apostle_n all_o be_v one_o to_o please_v god_n to_o conclude_v calum_fw-la say_v 6._o say_v l._n 2._o instit_fw-la cap._n 17._o s_o 6._o to_o ask_v whether_o christ_n do_v merit_n be_v no_o less_o a_o foolish_a curiosity_n than_o a_o rash_a definition_n et_fw-la infra_fw-la for_o by_o what_o merit_n can_v man_n obtain_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o world_n head_n of_o angel_n etc._n etc._n again_o he_o say_v against_o christ_n merete_v for_o us._n 1_o us._n lib_n 2._o cap_n 17._o acct._n 1_o i_o confess_v indeed_o if_o any_o man_n will_v oppose_v christ_n simple_o by_o himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o merit_n because_o there_o be_v no_o dignity_n in_o man_n which_o can_v merit_v or_o deserve_v god_n final_o that_o you_o may_v know_v this_o doctrine_n not_o to_o have_v be_v receive_v or_o know_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n he_o say_v 5._o say_v lib_n 3._o cap._n â_o ¶_o 5._o these_o thing_n in_o former_a age_n be_v not_o handle_v nor_o treat_v of_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v otherwise_o there_o will_v never_o have_v rise_v such_o trouble_n and_o dissension_n a_o old_a heresy_n condemn_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o heresy_n be_v condemn_v in_o jovinian_a as_o witness_v â_o witness_v lib._n contra_fw-la jovinianum_fw-la â_o s._n hierome_n whoesaid_a i_o that_o abstinence_n fasting_n and_o all_o other_o exercise_n of_o good_a work_n be_v not_o meritorious_a the_o 22._o article_n of_o fasting_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n fast_v and_o the_o lent_n have_v always_o have_v credit_n and_o place_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o have_v be_v heavenly_a commend_v and_o receive_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n scripture_n we_o ought_v to_o fast._n 2.12_o fast._n jocl_n 2.12_o now_o therefore_o say_v the_o lord_n turn_v unto_o i_o with_o your_o whole_a hart_n in_o fast_v and_o in_o weep_v and_o in_o mourning_n 12.8_o mourning_n toby_n 12.8_o prayer_n be_v good_a with_o fastinge_v and_o alm_n 15._o alm_n matth_n 6.16_o and_o cap._n 9_o 15._o when_o you_o fast_o be_v not_o as_o the_o hypocrite_n sad_a again_o but_o the_o day_n will_v come_v when_o bridegroom_n the_o shable_a take_v away_o from_o they_o and_o then_o they_o shall_v fast_o again_o 17.21_o again_o cap._n 17.21_o but_o this_o kind_n of_o devil_n be_v not_o cast_v out_o but_o by_o prayer_n and_o fast_v 2.37_o fast_v luke_n 2.37_o who_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o temple_n by_o fasting_n and_o prayer_n serve_v night_n and_o day_n 13.2.3_o day_n act._n 13.2.3_o and_o as_o they_o be_v minister_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o fast_v the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v etc._n etc._n then_o they_o fast_v and_o pray_v and_o impose_v hand_n upon_o they_o dismiss_v they_o again_o 22._o again_o cap._n 14_o 22._o and_o when_o they_o have_v ordain_v they_o priest_n in_o every_o
write_v again_o 15._o again_o lib._n the_o virit_n eccles_n c._n 15._o here_o peradventure_o thou_o will_v say_v read_v how_o christ_n command_v they_o to_o be_v receive_v that_o will_v paste_v from_o heresy_n unto_o the_o church_n this_o neither_o do_v i_o nor_o you_o manifest_o read_v etc._n etc._n therefore_o because_o it_o be_v no_o where_n read_v we_o must_v believe_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n testify_v to_o be_v true_a again_o 111._o again_o epist_n 111._o but_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o keep_v not_o write_v but_o deliver_v and_o which_o indeed_o be_v keep_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v give_v to_o proceed_v either_o from_o the_o apostle_n or_o general_a counsel_n who_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n be_v most_o wholesome_a command_v and_o ordain_v to_o be_v keep_v as_o that_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n ascension_n into_o heaven_n and_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o heaven_n be_v celebrate_v with_o a_o yearly_a solemnity_n the_o adversary_n whereas_o s._n chrysostome_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o deliver_v all_o by_o writing_n but_o many_o thing_n without_o which_o be_v as_o worthy_a credit_n as_o the_o rest_n 678._o rest_n m._n whitaker_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la pa._n 678._o m._n whitaker_n answer_v not_o otherwise_o thereunto_o then_o by_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o inconsiderate_a speech_n and_o not_o worthy_a so_o great_a a_o father_n also_o whereas_o s._n epiphanius_n say_v we_o must_v use_v tradition_n for_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o all_o thing_n because_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v certain_a thing_n by_o write_n and_o othersome_a by_o tradition_n with_o who_o agree_v s._n basil_n as_o aforesaid_a to_o who_o 689._o who_o in_o his_o conclusion_n annex_v to_o his_o conference_n the_o 1._o conclu_fw-fr pag._n 689._o m._n d._n raynoldis_n answer_v say_v i_o take_v not_o upon_o i_o to_o control_v they_o let_v the_o church_n judge_v if_o they_o consider_v with_o advice_n enough_o etc._n etc._n concern_v the_o father_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n s._n austin_n only_o be_v most_o approve_a by_o our_o adversary_n as_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o treatyse_n shall_v serve_v for_o all_o who_o be_v so_o plain_a and_o evident_o confess_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o 103._o that_o see_v he_o in_o m_o whitgistes_fw-fr defence_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 103._o carthweight_n say_v to_o allow_v s._n austin_n saying_n be_v to_o bring_v in_o popery_n again_o and_o that_o if_o s._n austin_n judgement_n be_v a_o good_a judgement_n than_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n command_v by_o god_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o there_o upon_o no_o sufficient_a doctrine_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o that_o former_a say_n of_o s._n eusebius_n 663._o eusebius_n m_o whitaker_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la pa._n 668._o chem._n exament_n par_fw-fr 1_o p._n 87._o 89._o 90_o m_o folk_n against_o purgatory_n pag._n 62_o 3â_n &_o 97._o etc._n etc._n against_o mâââall_v pag_n 17â_n 17â_n &_o against_o ââist_o mot_fw-fr pag._n 35._o 36_o m_o whitaker_n ub_z supra_fw-la pag._n 978_o 685._o 690_o 695_o 696._o 970._o 663._o m_o whitaker_n answer_v say_v that_o this_o testimony_n be_v plain_a enough_o but_o in_o no_o force_n to_o be_v receive_v because_o it_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n add_v now_o but_o hereunto_o that_o chemnitius_n do_v reprove_v for_o their_o like_a testimony_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n clemens_n alex._n origen_n epiphanius_n ambrose_n hierome_n maximus_n theophilus_n basil_n damascen_n etc._n etc._n that_o m._n furke_n also_o confess_v as_o much_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n tertullian_n cyprian_n augustine_n hierome_n etc._n etc._n and_o last_o that_o m._n whitaker_n acknowledge_v as_o much_o of_o all_o these_o father_n see_v the_o 10._o article_n where_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n be_v very_o plain_o confess_v which_o be_v here_o omit_v fol._n 15._o luther_n doctrine_n luther_n say_v galat_n say_v in_o comm_n cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la galat_n neither_o ought_v any_o other_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v and_o hear_v in_o the_o church_n than_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o doctores_fw-la or_o other_o author_n with_o their_o doctrine_n let_v they_o be_v accurse_v again_o 29._o again_o tom_fw-mi 7._o she_o fol._n 29._o here_o in_o this_o place_n i_o will_v repeat_v my_o grow_a work_n or_o foundation_n where_o upon_o i_o rely_v which_o ought_v infallible_o be_v keep_v of_o all_o to_o wit_n that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v without_o the_o scripture_n special_o in_o thing_n perteyn_a unto_o god_n do_v proceed_v from_o the_o devil_n and_o arbitrio_fw-la and_o lib._n the_o serââ_n arbitrio_fw-la we_o receive_v nothing_o but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n christian_n scripture_n in_o locis_fw-la comm_n de_fw-fr libertate_fw-la christian_n melanchthon_n call_v tradition_n for_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n simple_a life_n and_o all_o such_o like_a that_o be_v not_o write_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n et_fw-la ibidem_fw-la more_o over_o also_o say_v he_o when_o tradition_n speak_v of_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n yet_o they_o become_v wicked_a and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n in_o respect_n of_o error_n which_o be_v also_o propound_v and_o defend_v to_o write_v that_o they_o merit_v remission_n of_o sin_n that_o work_v whereby_o god_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v honour_v be_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n or_o that_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o institute_v such_o worship_n calvins_n doctrine_n caluin_n say_v 8._o say_v lib_n 4._o instit_fw-la cap_n 8._o ¶_o 8._o let_v this_o then_o stand_v for_o a_o maxim_n or_o general_a ground_n that_o no_o other_o than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n ought_v to_o have_v place_n in_o the_o church_n which_o word_n be_v contain_v first_o in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n next_o in_o the_o apostle_n write_n agiane_n â_o agiane_n ca._n 10._o ¶_o 8._o â_o therefore_o we_o account_v all_o constitution_n or_o decree_n wicked_a in_o who_o observation_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v feign_v to_o be_v place_v agiane_n 9_o agiane_n ¶_o 9_o ordinance_n which_o they_o call_v ecclesiastical_a where_o with_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n burden_n the_o church_n we_o say_v they_o be_v pernicious_a and_o wicked_a but_o our_o adversary_n defend_v they_o to_o be_v holy_a and_o wholesome_a again_o 18._o again_o ¶_o 18._o but_o now_o to_o refer_v the_o beginning_n of_o tradition_n to_o the_o apostle_n where_o with_o hither_o to_o the_o church_n have_v be_v oppress_v be_v a_o mere_a forgery_n or_o false_a hood_n 19_o hood_n ¶_o 19_o but_o they_o object_v this_o have_v be_v a_o ancient_a opinion_n that_o what_o be_v do_v with_o one_o consent_n in_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v always_o be_v think_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o for_o which_o they_o cyte_v augustine_n as_o a_o witness_n who_o say_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v observe_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v well_o be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o general_n counsel_n who_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n be_v most_o wholesome_a â0_n wholesome_a ¶_o â0_n but_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v troublesome_a i_o will_v produce_v only_o one_o example_n if_o any_o man_n ask_v they_o from_o whence_o they_o have_v their_o holy_a water_n present_o they_o answer_v from_o the_o apostle_n as_o if_o history_n do_v not_o attribute_v this_o invention_n to_o i_o know_v not_o what_o bishope_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n ibid._n what_o soever_o it_o be_v i_o will_v never_o grant_v that_o this_o come_v from_o a_o apostolical_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n nether_a do_v i_o respect_v it_o that_o else_o where_o the_o same_o augustine_n do_v ascribe_v other_o thing_n also_o to_o the_o apostle_n for_o because_o it_o have_v nothing_o but_o conjecture_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o give_v their_o judgement_n of_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n again_o â7_n again_o ¶_o â7_n this_o always_o be_v only_o to_o be_v except_v in_o these_o observation_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n lest_o they_o be_v think_v either_o necessary_a unto_o salvation_n and_o so_o bind_v conscience_n with_o religion_n or_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o so_o there_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v some_o piety_n in_o they_o a_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n ãâ¦ã_o august_n ãâ¦ã_o cap._n ãâ¦ã_o conâ_n ãâ¦ã_o the_o arian_n heretic_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n receive_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n as_o maximinus_n himself_o a_o arian_n bishop_n teach_v which_o heresy_n afterwards_o many_o other_o imitate_v as_o nestor_n dioscorus_n eutyches_n etc._n etc._n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o seven_o synod_n ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o 29._o article_n of_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n all_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n
ârasmus_fw-la blame_n the_o old_a interpreter_n as_o dissent_v from_o the_o greek_a neither_o ought_v you_o think_v that_o therefore_o i_o commend_v beza_n translation_n because_o i_o bring_v he_o in_o commend_v you_o for_o wherein_o he_o swarn_v from_o we_o in_o doctrine_n he_o swerve_v also_o in_o translation_n though_o with_o out_o ground_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v also_o reprehend_v by_o his_o fellow_n protestants_n as_o namely_o castalio_n say_v 170._o in_o defence_n translat_fw-la pag._n 170._o to_o note_v all_o error_n say_v he_o of_o beza_n in_o traslate_n the_o new_a testament_n the_o work_n will_v require_v to_o great_a a_o volume_n so_o that_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n build_v his_o faith_n upon_o these_o man_n who_o in_o the_o very_a ground_n work_v itself_o a_o gree_n no_o better_o than_o the_o confusion_n of_o tongue_n in_o the_o tower_n of_o babel_n which_o that_o you_o may_v with_o more_o facility_n &_o ease_n apprehend_v i_o have_v write_v more_o in_o particular_a hereafter_o but_o here_o perchance_o you_o may_v further_o move_v a_o question_n what_o my_o intent_n and_o scope_n may_v be_v in_o write_v all_o this_o and_o make_v such_o collection_n of_o place_n i_o answer_v only_o that_o you_o may_v have_v some_o sight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n whereby_o you_o shall_v the_o better_a judge_n of_o i_o and_o see_v your_o own_o estate_n without_o which_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n by_o our_o saviour_n own_o word_n â0_n matth._n 12._o â0_n he_o that_o be_v not_o with_o i_o be_v against_o i_o and_o he_o that_o gather_v not_o with_o i_o scatter_v and_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v 10.14_o rom._n 10.14_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v which_o i_o suppose_v you_o as_o yet_o never_o true_o understand_v wherefore_o if_o this_o be_v true_a i_o pray_v grant_v i_o this_o reasonable_a request_n that_o you_o will_v at_o least_o read_v my_o endeavour_n 3.8_o phil._n 3.8_o and_o say_v with_o s._n paul_n i_o esteem_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v detriment_n for_o the_o pass_a knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o who_o i_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n as_o detriment_n and_o esteem_v as_o dounge_n that_o i_o may_v gain_v christ_n and_o sure_o no_o marvel_n see_v the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n have_v utter_v 16.26_o matt._n 16.26_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o sustain_v the_o damage_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n in_o this_o be_v that_o one_o thing_n which_o he_o insinuate_v where_o he_o say_v martha_n martha_n 10.41_o luc._n 10.41_o thou_o be_v trouble_v about_o very_a many_o thing_n but_o one_o thing_n be_v necessary_a so_o that_o see_v this_o one_o thing_n be_v so_o necessary_a where_o upon_o all_o other_o thing_n depend_v happy_a yea_o thrice_o happy_a be_v that_o man_n that_o do_v attain_v unto_o it_o but_o by_o reason_n the_o brevity_n of_o a_o brotherly_a letter_n will_v not_o permit_v so_o large_a a_o discourse_n let_v your_o discreet_a and_o religious_a judgement_n i_o beseech_v be_v the_o comment_n upon_o so_o small_a a_o text_n and_o what_o in_o word_n be_v want_v suppose_v in_o effect_n to_o be_v most_o abundant_a but_o of_o that_o common_a humour_n of_o set_a light_n by_o these_o thing_n and_o reject_v whatsoever_o be_v not_o answerable_a to_o your_o affection_n do_v reign_n in_o you_o and_o wilful_a passion_n oversway_o reason_n a_o common_a deceit_n ever_o in_o such_o case_n practyse_v by_o the_o devil_n to_o lead_v poor_a soulâs_n capâtue_n to_o eternal_a perdition_n if_o i_o say_v this_o venom_n have_v so_o seize_v upon_o you_o and_o infect_v your_o sense_n that_o you_o have_v no_o feeling_n or_o care_n of_o that_o to_o wit_n your_o soul_n health_n the_o very_a remembrance_n whereof_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o dear_a saviour_n sweat_v drop_n of_o blood_n 42._o luc_n 22_o 42._o desire_v his_o father_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o chalice_n may_v pass_v from_o he_o if_o i_o say_v you_o be_v thus_o possess_v with_o a_o resolution_n to_o forsake_v and_o reject_v all_o good_a advice_n what_o be_v leave_v form_n but_o only_o with_o the_o prophet_n hieremie_n to_o lament_v your_o miserable_a case_n but_o what_o be_v it_o true_a be_v your_o redemption_n so_o great_a a_o agony_n to_o our_o saviour_n that_o the_o only_a remembrance_n thereof_o make_v he_o sweat_v blood_n and_o will_v you_o esteem_v it_o a_o thing_n of_o so_o small_a moment_n as_o rather_o to_o content_v yourself_o with_o that_o estate_n i_o say_v with_o that_o religion_n which_o you_o receive_v from_o a_o apostata_fw-la monk_n martin_n luther_n not_o yet_o a_o hundred_o year_n since_o then_o to_o seek_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o his_o service_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o our_o saviour_n promise_v shall_v never_o err_v 16.187_o matt._n 16.187_o and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o yea_o which_o wilbe_n to_o your_o great_a damnation_n your_o own_o doctor_n and_o minister_n grant_v the_o true_a apostolic_a doctrine_n to_o have_v be_v teach_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o all_o sincerity_n the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o corruption_n of_o only_a one_o hundred_o by_o a_o dissolute_a apostata_fw-la monk_n may_v violat_a our_o saviour_n credit_n with_o six_o hundred_o year_n practice_n i_o can_v think_v it_o at_o least_o in_o you_o for_o what_o can_v there_o be_v more_o wicked_a and_o devoid_a of_o human_a reason_n than_o god_n to_o be_v solicitous_a for_o man_n evil_n and_o he_o himself_o nothing_o regard_v they_o if_o other_o wise_a and_o that_o i_o be_o herein_o deceive_v 26.21_o matt._n 26.21_o oh_o horrid_a and_o dreadful_a sentence_n it_o where_o good_a for_o he_o if_o that_o man_n have_v not_o be_v bear_v yea_o very_o hell_n itself_o will_v roar_v and_o crave_v his_o right_a say_n why_o do_v i_o not_o devour_v and_o excruciate_v this_o wretch_n in_o our_o eternal_a flame_n long_o since_o there_o due_a my_o good_a bro_n if_o i_o seem_v more_o earnest_a than_o be_v meet_v excuse_v i_o i_o pray_v you_o it_o proceed_v from_o no_o ill_a affection_n but_o that_o tender_a brotherly_a love_n and_o zeal_n which_o i_o bear_v to_o ward_n both_o your_o body_n and_o soul_n not_o he_o which_o desire_v with_o baal_n to_o die_v the_o death_n of_o the_o righteous_a or_o shall_v cry_v lord_n 7.21_o num_fw-la 23.10_o matt._n 7.21_o lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o which_o do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o live_v the_o life_n of_o the_o righteous_a if_o you_o think_v my_o manner_n of_o write_v strange_a and_o from_o my_o accustom_a style_n suppose_v my_o condition_n to_o be_v alter_v and_o that_o with_o holy_a job_n i_o humble_o thank_v god_n for_o all_o his_o affliction_n and_o cross_n lay_v upon_o i_o as_o peculiar_a blessing_n and_o pledge_n of_o his_o further_a love_n whereby_o he_o have_v teach_v i_o in_o some_o sort_n to_o know_v myself_o and_o that_o miserable_a state_n of_o blind_a ignorance_n in_o which_o i_o have_v hitherto_o live_v in_o now_o therefore_o understand_v that_o have_v change_v master_n i_o have_v also_o change_v livery_n no_o more_o a_o protestant_n but_o now_o a_o catholic_a no_o more_o a_o vassal_n or_o bondslave_n to_o satan_n and_o his_o minister_n but_o now_o a_o servant_n and_o follower_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o i_o earnest_o beseech_v in_o my_o daily_a prayer_n that_o god_n will_v be_v no_o less_o merciful_a unto_o you_o than_o he_o have_v be_v compassonate_v on_o i_o that_o he_o will_v here_o also_o teach_v you_o your_o haruist_n that_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v we_o may_v joyful_o reap_v eternal_a bliss_n together_o but_o s._n austin_n say_v he_o which_o make_v thou_o without_o thou_o will_v not_o justify_v or_o save_v thou_o without_o the_o wherefore_o once_o more_o i_o pray_v you_o with_o true_a zeal_n and_o hearty_a devotion_n bestow_v your_o labour_n upon_o this_o my_o travel_n and_o i_o doubt_v nothing_o of_o god_n grace_n here_o be_v the_o life_n you_o must_v make_v your_o incorruptible_a treasure_n in_o the_o next_o be_v nothing_o hear_v but_o immutable_a eternity_n where_o all_o thing_n pass_v according_a to_o this_o life_n well_o or_o ill_o if_o well_o happy_a man_n that_o ever_o he_o be_v bear_v if_o ill_a woe_n and_o not_o temporal_a but_o eternal_a misery_n yea_o according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n it_o be_v good_a for_o he_o if_o that_o man_n have_v not_o be_v bear_v because_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o such_o as_o depart_v not_o this_o life_n in_o state_n of_o grace_n of_o sorrow_n to_o amendment_n wherefore_o in_o vain_a shall_v you_o then_o lament_v woe_n wretch_n
italy_n remigius_n arch_a bish_n of_o rheims_n 480_o france_n rabanus_n arch_n bish._n of_o moguntin_n 840_o germ._n remigius_n antisiodorensis_n bish._n 880_o france_n regino_n ârumiensis_fw-la abbot_n 90_o germ._n radulphus_fw-la flaviacensis_fw-la âuldensis_fw-la monachus_n 980_o germ._n rupertus_n tuitiensis_n abbot_n 1â20_n germ._n s._n scrapion_n bish._n of_o antioch_n 2â2_n syria_n sabadius_n bish._n of_o agerna_n 370_o france_n sophronius_n the_o elder_a of_o jerusalem_n 400_o syria_n severianus_fw-la gabalensis_n 400_o france_n severus_n minoricensis_n 412_o spayn_n severus_n sulpitius_n 420_o france_n socrates_n historiog_n 430_o greece_n sedulius_n scotus_n priest_n 450_o scotland_n simeon_n stilites_fw-la 458_o syria_n salinanus_fw-la massiliensis_n presbyter_n 460_o france_n salonius_n bish._n of_o vienna_n 470_o france_n siudas_n 470_o greece_n sidonius_n bish._n of_o auernia_fw-la 480_o france_n sabba_n abbot_n 513_o syria_n strabus_n fuldensis_n monk_n 840_o germ._n simeon_n metaphrastes_n 950_o greece_n sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la monk_n 1000_o flader_n t._n tertullian_n of_o carthadge_n 200_o africa_n titus_n bostrensis_n bish._n 360_o syria_n terentian_a of_o rome_n 363_o italy_n theodosius_n the_o elder_a emp._n 370_o  _fw-fr theophilus_n arch_n bish._n of_o alexandria_n 590_o egypt_n theodosius_n the_o young_a emp._n 430_o  _fw-fr theodoretus_n bish_n of_o cyrus_n 440_o syria_n turibius_n asturicensis_fw-la bish._n 447_o spayn_n theodolus_fw-la priest_n in_o cele_n syria_n 478_o syria_n theodosius_n à _fw-fr monk_n 5â1_n capad_n theodorus_n lector_fw-la 520_o greece_n tiberius_n ii_o emperor_n 580_o  _fw-fr theodorus_n arch_a bish_n of_o canterbury_n 6â0_n engl._n turpinus_fw-la bish_n of_o rheims_n 800_o france_n theodulphus_n aurelianens_n bish._n 840_o france_n theophilactus_fw-la arch_n bish._n of_o bulgario_fw-la 480_o greece_n theodorus_n balsamus_n 1180_o greece_n thomas_n of_o aquaine_n 1274_o italy_n v._o victorinus_n of_o pictavia_n 263_o france_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n monk_n 430_o france_n vranius_n disciple_n of_o s._n paulinus_n nolanus_n 4ââ_n italy_n vigilius_n tridentinus_n bish._n 450_o italy_n victor_n bish._n of_o cartona_n in_o maurit_fw-la 4_o 6_o africa_n voconius_n bish._n of_o castellanum_n in_o mauritania_n 456_o africa_n victor_n vticensis_n bish._n 486_o africa_n vedastus_n bish_n of_o arras_n 5_o 4_o france_z victor_n bish._n of_o tunis_n 566_o africa_n vsuardus_n monk_n 780_o france_n z._n zozomenus_n historiographer_n 430_o greece_n zeno_n veronensis_n bish_n 663_o italy_n io._n zonarus_n monk_n historiographer_n 1100_o greece_n a_o catalogue_n of_o our_o english_a doctor_n cite_v in_o this_o treatyse_n viz._n abbot_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n ball_n minister_n bancroft_n d._n and_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n ballow_o d._n and_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n ball._n minister_n bilson_n d._n and_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n bridge_n d._n and_o bishop_n of_o oxford_n bunny_n minister_n and_o chaplin_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o york_n camden_n chief_a herald_n of_o england_n carleile_n d._n of_o divinity_n cart-wright_n archpuritan_n of_o england_n covil_n doctor_n couper_n doctor_n and_o bish_n of_o winchester_n dearing_n a_o great_a puritan_n disputation_n in_o the_o tower_n downam_n doctor_n and_o bishop_n of_o derrie_n in_o ireland_n dove_n doctor_n and_o preacher_n in_o london_n fox_n field_n doctor_n fulke_o doctor_n gardiner_z doctor_z and_z bishop_n of_o winchester_n gyssord_n minister_n henoch_n clapham_n a_o great_a puritan_n hamfrey_n doctor_n and_o master_n of_o maudliu_n college_n in_o oxford_n hutton_n doctor_n and_o bishop_n of_o york_n juell_n doctor_n and_o bishop_n of_o salisburse_n knox_n a_o chief_a minister_n in_o scotland_n minister_n of_o lincoln_n morton_n doctor_n and_o bishop_n of_o chester_n napper_n a_o chief_a mathematician_n in_o scotland_n puritan_n survey_v of_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n parkins_n preacher_n in_o cainebridge_n penrie_n a_o puritan_n some_o doctor_n and_o master_n of_o peter_n house_n in_o camebridg_n suâââff_o dean_n of_o exon._n whitaker_n doctor_n and_o master_n of_o s._n io._n college_n in_o camebridge_n whitgift_n doctor_n and_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n willet_n doctor_n the_o author_n to_o the_o reader_n gentle_a reader_n for_o as_o much_o as_o through_o diverse_a and_o urgent_a occasion_n withdraw_v i_o i_o can_v not_o attend_v the_o press_n myself_o or_o procure_v any_o to_o supply_v my_o place_n with_o that_o care_n and_o diligence_n which_o be_v require_v especial_o in_o such_o abusinesse_n which_o ought_v very_o careful_o to_o be_v attend_v once_o begin_v and_o lykwyse_o constrain_v to_o make_v use_n of_o a_o stranger_n altogether_o ignorant_a in_o our_o tongue_n for_o the_o press_n through_o these_o i_o say_v and_o such_o other_o inconvenience_n there_o have_v escape_v many_o error_n for_o which_o i_o will_v entreat_v patience_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o altogether_o impute_v unto_o my_o negligence_n or_o take_v in_o ill_a part_n the_o rather_o because_o i_o do_v not_o find_v any_o that_o do_v so_o obscure_v the_o sense_n but_o it_o may_v very_o easy_o be_v understand_v what_o be_v intend_v farewell_n i._o p._n priest_n the_o safeguard_v from_z shipwreck_n or_o heaven_n haven_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v attain_v with_o out_o the_o ship_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o wit_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n who_o faith_n therefore_o through_o all_o age_n as_o in_o a_o glass_n in_o here_o present_v unto_o you_o the_o i._o article_n the_o english_a be_v convert_v a_o thousand_o year_n since_o to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n one_o thousand_o year_n since_o s._n gregory_n then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n convert_v we_o englishman_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o s._n augustine_n from_o heathenish_a infidelity_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n s._n bede_n term_v this_o s._n gregory_n 2._o gregory_n lib._n â_o hist_o cap._n 2._o a_o man_n of_o immortal_a wit_n who_o by_o his_o industry_n convert_v the_o english_a nation_n from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n say_v there_o yeâ_n further_o of_o he_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n to_o we_o for_o we_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o his_o apostleship_n in_o our_o lord_n m._n godwin_n say_v 3._o say_v in_o his_o cate-log_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n pag_n 3._o that_o bless_a and_o boly_n father_n saint_n gregory_n be_v the_o occasion_n of_o replant_n the_o christian_a faith_n in_o our_o country_n m._n whitaker_n say_v 94_o say_v contra_fw-la duraum_n l._n 5_o p._n 94_o gregory_n do_v we_o a_o great_a benefit_n which_o we_o will_v ever_o most_o grateful_o remember_v m._n godwin_n term_v this_o s._n austin_n 7_o austin_n ibid_fw-la pa._n 7_o this_o our_o apostle_n in_o prose_n that_o our_o then_o conversion_n be_v in_o every_o particular_a point_n the_o same_o with_o our_o now_o profess_a cathol_a k_n faith_n m._n d._n humphrey_n say_v 617_o say_v in_o jesuitâmo_n par_fw-fr 2._o rat_n 5_o p_o 5._o &_o 617_o but_o what_o have_v gregory_n and_o augustine_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n a_o burden_n of_o ceremony_n etc._n etc._n the_o archbishop_n pall_n at_o solennâ_n mass_n time_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n the_o offering_n of_o the_o healthful_a host_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n relic_n &c_n &c_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n new_a consecration_n of_o church_n &c_n &c_n the_o like_a description_n be_v make_v of_o s._n gregory_n doctrine_n by_o 568._o by_o in_o chron._n lib_n 4._o pag._n 567._o &_o 568._o carion_n also_o john_n baâe_o affirm_v as_o much_o and_o say_v further_a with_o all_o that_o 3._o that_o in_o act_n rom._n pontiff_a print_a ad_fw-la basil_n 1558_o pa._n 44._o etc._n etc._n centur._n 1._o fol._n 3._o s._n augustine_n be_v send_v by_o gregory_n to_o season_v the_o english_a saxon_n with_o popish_a faith_n &_o that_o king_n ethelbert_n die_v one_o &_o twenty_o year_n after_o he_o have_v receive_v popery_n luke_n 290._o luke_n epitome_n hist._n ecclesiastica_fw-la cent_z 6_o p._n 289._o &_o 290._o oseander_n describe_v it_o yet_o more_o particular_o this_o be_v so_o 333._o so_o in_o his_o consut_n of_o purgat_fw-la pag._n 333._o evident_a m_n d._n fââk_n term_v it_o therefore_o in_o general_a our_o perversion_n m_o powell_n call_v the_o same_o saint_n augustine_n 34._o augustine_n considerate_a of_o the_o papist_n supplication_n pag._n 34._o a_o false_a apostle_n m.d_o willet_n place_v s._n gregory_n &_o s_n augustine_n among_o the_o 212._o the_o in_o his_o tetractylon_n papism_n pag._n 212._o first_o father_n of_o superstition_n &_o captain_n or_o ringleader_n of_o popih_o devyne_n the_o 2._o article_n the_o same_o faith_n be_v universal_o profess_v for_o sundry_a age_n before_o and_o be_v also_o agreeable_a to_o that_o first_o faith_n where_o unto_o the_o britain_n of_o wales_n be_v convert_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n m_o john_n napper_n in_o his_o 6â_n his_o pag._n 6â_n treatise_n upon_o the_o revelation_n dedicate_v to_o his_o majesty_n say_v between_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 300._o and_o 316._o the_o
unto_o we_o to_o flatter_v the_o simple_a but_o wonderful_a be_v the_o profundity_n o_o god_n wonderful_a be_v the_o profounditie_n it_o be_v a_o horror_n to_o look_v into_o it_o a_o horror_n of_o honour_n a_o fear_n of_o love._n to_o conclude_v last_o of_o all_o he_o say_v 21._o say_v epi._n 119_o cap._n 21._o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v far_o more_o thing_n which_o â_o know_v not_o than_o which_o i_o know_v hitherto_o for_o learning_n sanctity_n and_o fidelity_n even_o according_a to_o our_o adversary_n peerless_a saint_n augustine_n s_o 9_o s_o ruffinus_n lib._n 2._o hist._n cap._n 9_o basil_n and_o s_o gregory_n nazianzen_n both_o noble_a man_n both_o broughtt_n up_o at_o athens_n both_o companion_n for_o thirteen_o year_n together_o in_o one_o monastery_n do_v bestow_v their_o whole_a endeavour_n in_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o gather_v the_o understanding_n of_o they_o not_o out_o of_o their_o own_o presumption_n but_o out_o of_o the_o write_n and_o authority_n of_o their_o eldere_n who_o as_o be_v manifest_a have_v the_o rule_n of_o their_o understanding_n from_o apostolical_a tradition_n s._n ambrose_n say_v the_o divine_a scripture_n be_v a_o constantinum_fw-la a_o epist_n 44_o ad_fw-la constantinum_fw-la sea_n have_v in_o it_o deep_a sentence_n and_o obscurity_n of_o prophetical_a riddle_n s._n hierome_n that_o miracle_n of_o understanding_n in_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_a tongue_n say_v of_o himself_o ad_fw-la himself_o epist_n ad_fw-la i_o never_o cease_v say_v he_o even_o from_o my_o tender_a ago_o either_o to_o read_v or_o to_o ask_v learned_a man_n such_o thing_n as_o i_o do_v not_o know_v neither_o do_v i_o ever_o take_v myself_o to_o be_v my_o master_n final_o not_o long_a since_o for_o this_o only_a cause_n i_o go_v to_o alexandria_n to_o see_v diââymus_n and_o to_o be_v resolve_v by_o he_o of_o all_o such_o doubt_n 8._o doubt_n epist_n ad_fw-la aâgâsââân_v quaest_n 8._o as_o i_o have_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n again_o the_o whole_a epistle_n unto_o the_o roman_n say_v he_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o to_o many_o obscurity_n but_o now_o i_o know_v you_o be_v not_o with_o outsome_a evasion_n and_o among_o many_o this_o be_v a_o chief_a one_o that_o although_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a in_o many_o place_n yet_o you_o which_o will_v have_v all_o require_v unto_o salvation_n plain_a to_o every_o man_n but_o i_o prove_v the_o contrary_a for_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n and_o not_o with_o stand_v that_o place_n in_o s._n john_n 5._o john_n cap._n 3._o five_o 5._o unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o &c_n &c_n be_v so_o obscure_a and_o do_v breed_v such_o cavil_v &_o contention_n between_o caluin_n and_o breniââs_n that_o 15._o that_o lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 16._o v._n 15._o caluin_n do_v confound_v the_o spirit_n with_o the_o water_n but_o matt._n but_o in_o cap._n 3._o matt._n brâââius_n confound_v both_o with_o penance_n moreover_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o you_o call_v the_o lord_n 51._o lord_n john_n c._n 6_o v._n 51._o supper_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o not_o with_o stand_v it_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o see_v how_o many_o and_o diverse_a exposition_n their_o be_v upon_o these_o sour_a word_n 26._o word_n matt._n 26_o v._n 26._o this_o be_v my_o body_n s_o claudius_n saint_n say_v that_o there_o be_v fowescore_n &_o four_o interpretation_n invent_v by_o heretic_n upon_o they_o sour_a word_n only_o 10._o only_o repet_n 1._o cap._n 10._o also_o justification_n be_v necessary_a and_o yet_o luke_n osiander_n a_o chief_a protestant_n in_o germany_n say_v that_o there_o be_v twenty_o several_a opinion_n of_o it_o where_o of_o every_o one_o do_v challenge_v scripture_n for_o that_o which_o it_o hold_v final_o at_o least_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o who_o do_v not_o see_v how_o the_o âbionites_n arian_n nestorian_n eutychias_n &_o valentinians_n do_v fight_v and_o contend_v aboânt_v it_o and_o âast_v of_o all_o the_o new_a arian_n and_o eutychian_o of_o this_o our_o age_n which_o certain_o they_o will_v never_o do_v if_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o have_v handle_v necessary_a to_o âââation_n have_v be_v plain_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v to_o conclude_v the_o only_a disobedien_n in_o not_o bilieve_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v sufficient_a to_o condenne_v we_o if_o we_o do_v credit_v our_o saviour_n word_n who_o say_v 17._o say_v matt._n 18._o v._n 17._o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_a and_o publicam_fw-la and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o church_n he_o say_v 20._o say_v ibid._n ca._n 16_o five_o 18._o etc._n etc._n 28._o vers_fw-la 20._o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o that_o he_o will_v remain_v wiâh_o they_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o if_o you_o will_v yet_o object_v and_o say_v that_o you_o can_v allege_v as_o firm_a and_o forceable_a place_n of_o scripture_n in_o your_o behalf_n as_o i_o have_v do_v in_o i_o or_o shall_v do_v heat_n after_o not_o with_o stand_v you_o may_v not_o present_o conclude_v against_o we_o but_o rather_o let_v we_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o the_o scripture_n can_v nor_o must_v not_o be_v contrary_a to_o itself_o which_o to_o affirm_v and_o maintain_v be_v blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o certain_o our_o saviour_n say_v 32_o say_v matth._n 12._o v._n 32_o he_o that_o shall_v speak_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v he_o neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v whereby_o the_o way_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o place_n after_o this_o life_n where_o sin_n be_v forgive_v for_o hell_n i_o think_v you_o expect_v no_o absolution_n there_o purgatory_n you_o abhorâe_v the_o name_n of_o it_o so_o foolist_n you_o think_v that_o opinion_n but_o into_o heaven_n s._n john_n say_v there_o sââll_v enter_v no_o pollute_a thing_n not_o that_o do_v abomination_n and_o make_v âye_z to_o close_o up_o this_o matter_n therefore_o with_o these_o few_o sentence_n the_o first_o be_v luther_n who_o see_v that_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v stand_v umnoveable_a for_o the_o catholic_a &_o under_o no_o colour_n may_v be_v wrest_v to_o any_o other_o sense_n he_o call_v the_o divine_a scripture_n the_o book_n of_o heretic_n 19_o heretic_n lib._n 3._o count_n brentium_n &_o alanus_n copuâ_n dialogo_fw-la 6._o cap._n 19_o as_o hosius_n write_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v olampaducem_fw-la say_v lib_n cent_n zuinglium_n &_o ooec_fw-la olampaducem_fw-la âf_v this_o world_n say_v he_o shall_v long_o endure_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v for_o the_o diverse_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o now_o be_v extant_a &_o that_o for_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n that_o we_o do_v receive_v again_o the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n and_o fly_v unto_o they_o for_o refuge_n the_o other_o sentence_n be_v of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n who_o say_v 37._o say_v lib_n cont_n prefanas_fw-la haereââm_fw-la novitateâ_n cap._n 37._o as_o often_o as_o heretic_n do_v allege_v the_o sentence_n of_o divine_a law_n by_o which_o be_v evil_o interpret_v they_o labour_v to_o confirm_v their_o error_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o they_o follow_v the_o crafty_a invention_n of_o their_o author_n the_o devil_n again_o when_o we_o see_v heretic_n use_v the_o catholic_a faith_n let_v we_o not_o doubt_v but_o it_o be_v the_o devil_n that_o speak_v in_o they_o now_o see_v the_o scripture_n must_v have_v one_o true_a sense_n let_v we_o be_v resolve_v by_o the_o most_o probable_a authority_n whether_o by_o the_o warrant_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o her_o doctor_n or_o of_o luther_n &_o caluin_n upon_o their_o private_a spirit_n and_o some_o few_o sectary_n the_o 6._o article_n scripture_n be_v not_o for_o every_o one_o to_o read_v and_o interpret_v 2.7_o interpret_v mal._n 2.7_o the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n &_o the_o law_n they_o sc_n lattie_n shall_v require_v at_o his_o mouth_n 8._o mouth_n deut._n 24._o v._o 8._o thou_o shall_v do_v what_o soever_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o leviticall_a law_n shall_v teach_v thou_o 3._o thou_o luke_n 10_o 3._o go_v behold_v i_o send_v you_o 15._o you_o make._n 16._o v._n 15._o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n 16._o creature_n luke_n 10_o 16._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o 26._o i_o john_n 14._o v._o 26._o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o the_o father_n will_v send_v in_o my_o name_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n 20._o thing_n matt._n 28_o v._n 20._o and_o behold_v
i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n 17._o world_n matt._n 18_o 17._o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_a and_o the_o publican_n 13.14.16_o publican_n tim._n 4._o v._n 13.14.16_o attend_v unto_o read_v exhortation_n doctrine_n neglect_v not_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophecy_n with_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o priesthood_n &c_n &c_n attend_v to_o thyself_o and_o to_o doctrine_n be_v earnest_n in_o they_o for_o in_o this_o do_n thou_o shall_v save_v both_o thyself_o and_o they_o that_o hear_v thou_o 17.8_o thou_o deut._n 17.8_o if_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o judgement_n between_o cause_n and_o cause_n between_o leper_n &_o leper_n to_o be_v hard_a and_o doubtful_a with_o thou_o and_o shall_v perceive_v word_n to_o vary_v the_o judgement_n with_o in_o thy_o gate_n arise_v and_o ascend_v unto_o the_o place_n which_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n have_v choose_v and_o thou_o shall_v go_v unto_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o levite_n and_o the_o judge_n which_o shall_v be_v at_o that_o time_n &_o thou_o shall_v seek_v of_o they_o who_o shall_v judge_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o judgement_n to_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v do_v whatsoever_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o be_v over_o the_o place_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v choose_v and_o what_o soever_o they_o shall_v teach_v thou_o according_a to_o his_o law_n &_o thou_o shall_v follow_v their_o sentence_n neither_o shall_v thou_o decline_v unto_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o unto_o the_o left_a but_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v proud_a and_o will_v not_o obey_v the_o command_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o at_o that_o time_n do_v minister_v unto_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n he_o shall_v die_v according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n 12._o judge_n aggai_n 2_o v._o 12._o thus_o say_v our_o lord_n the_o god_n of_o host_n ask_v the_o law_n of_o the_o priest_n s._n priest_n lib_n 2._o paralip_n cap._n 19_o 11_o &_o 2._o paralip_n cap._n 26._o v._n 16._o s._n amarias_n your_o high_a priest_n shall_v sit_v over_o those_o thing_n that_o perteine_a unto_o god_n moreover_o zabadias_n the_o son_n of_o ishmael_n and_o captain_n in_o the_o house_n of_o juda_n shall_v be_v over_o those_o work_v that_o perteine_a unto_o the_o office_n of_o the_o king_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n do_v sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o moses_n and_o our_o saviour_n say_v 25._o say_v matth._n 25._o whatsoever_o thing_n they_o shall_v say_v keep_v it_o and_o do_v it_o but_o according_a to_o their_o work_n do_v not_o also_o in_o the_o 15.2_o the_o act._n 15.2_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v a_o controsie_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v remit_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o jerusalem_n secund_o it_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n 15.2_o church_n act._n 15.2_o in_o the_o first_o age_n or_o hundred_o year_n there_o do_v arise_v a_o question_n about_o certain_a old_a legal_a ceremony_n which_o be_v decide_v in_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n by_o s._n peter_n &_o the_o apostle_n 33_o apostle_n s._n aug._n the_o hartel_n 29._o tom_n 6._o &_o euseb_n 5._o cap._n 2d_o 23.24_o euseb_n 6._o cap._n 37._o in_o ruffino_n 33_o in_o the_o secund_a age_n there_o be_v a_o controversy_n about_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n concern_v which_o there_o be_v many_o counsel_n but_o at_o length_n the_o question_n be_v so_o decide_v by_o pope_n victor_n that_o who_o soluet_fw-la after_o do_v not_o obey_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v hold_v for_o a_o heretic_n c_o in_o the_o three_o age_n the_o novatian_a heresy_n be_v condemn_v by_o pope_n cornelius_n also_o in_o that_o age_n the_o heresy_n of_o anabaptisme_n be_v condemn_v by_o pope_n stephen_n his_o successor_n 9_o successor_n tom_fw-mi 1._o council_n &_o lib._n 1._o hist._n eccl_n theodore_n c._n 1._o ac_fw-la socrat._n 1._o c._n 5._o the._n 5._o hist_o 9_o in_o the_o four_o age_n the_o arian_n heresy_n be_v conden_v in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o emperor_n be_v present_a but_o give_v judgement_n in_o nothing_o in_o the_o same_o age_n the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v by_o the_o command_n of_o pope_n damasus_n condemn_v the_o macedânioan_n heresy_n 4._o heresy_n euagruus_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 4._o in_o the_o five_o age_n the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o first_o council_n at_o ephesus_n cyrill_n be_v present_a in_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n celestine_n 4._o celestine_n ibid_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o also_o a_o little_a after_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o same_o pope_n 5._o pope_n august_n 2._o âetract_v 50._o tom_n 5._o also_o the_o pelagian_n heresy_n be_v condemn_v by_o pope_n innocent_a and_o zepherinus_n in_o the_o 6_o age_n many_o heresy_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o 5_o synod_n in_o which_o only_a bishop_n be_v judge_n council_n judge_n vide_fw-la tum_fw-la council_n in_o the_o 7._o age_n the_o monothelite_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o six_o synod_n over_o which_o be_v the_o pop_z legate_n the_o emperor_n be_v present_a and_o do_v subscribe_v after_o the_o bishop_n not_o judge_v or_o defyne_a any_o thing_n as_o bishop_n but_o only_o consent_v synodis_fw-la consent_v lege_fw-la tomon_a council_n &_o lib._n photic_a the_o 7_o synodis_fw-la in_o the_o eight_o age_n image_n breaker_n be_v conden_v in_o the_o 7._o synod_n over_o which_o be_v the_o pop_z legate_n in_o the_o nine_o age_n certain_a ecclesiastical_a controversy_n be_v define_v in_o the_o eight_o synod_n over_o which_o be_v the_o pop_z legate_n the_o emperor_n also_o be_v present_a and_o do_v subscribe_v after_o the_o pope_n legate_n &_o patriarch_n but_o in_o the_o same_o the_o emperor_n affirm_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o devyne_fw-mi thing_n do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o ten_o age_n there_o be_v no_o heresy_n but_o only_o the_o greek_a schism_n berengarium_fw-la schism_n ââfran_fw-mi &_o guitmundas_fw-la lib_n 1._o contra_fw-la berengarium_fw-la in_o the_o 11_o age_n the_o heresy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la be_v condemn_v by_o pope_n leo_n the_o nine_o in_o concilio_fw-la wercellensi_fw-la and_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o secund_a in_o council_n rom_n 194._o rom_n s_o bernard_n epist_n 194._o in_o the_o 12._o age_n be_v condemn_v the_o error_n of_o abailardus_n by_o pope_n innocent_a the_o secund_a cantica_fw-la secund_a idem_fw-la serm_n 8_o in_o cantica_fw-la also_o the_o error_n of_o gilbert_n porrcianus_n by_o eugenius_n the_o three_o in_o the_o 13._o age_n letter_n age_n council_n letter_n the_o heresy_n of_o joachimus_n abbot_n be_v condemn_v by_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o also_o after_o that_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o greek_n by_o pope_n gregory_n the_o ten_o viennensi_fw-la ten_o council_n viennensi_fw-la in_o the_o 14_o age_n the_o error_n of_o the_o begarde_n be_v condemn_v by_o pope_n clement_n the_o 5._o constantiensi_fw-la 5._o in_o concilio_n constantiensi_fw-la in_o the_o 15._o age_n the_o heresy_n of_o john_n wicklief_n and_o john_n husse_v be_v condemn_v by_o pope_n martin_n the_o 5._o floremâitio_fw-la 5._o in_o concilio_n floremâitio_fw-la also_o the_o error_n of_o the_o grecian_n under_o pope_n eugenius_n the_o four_o final_o in_o this_o our_o age_n 16._o the_o lutheran_n heresy_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n father_n s_o ireneus_fw-la who_o live_v a_o domini_fw-la 160._o say_v 2._o say_v lib._n 3._o c._n 2._o that_o controversy_n canduct_v be_v decide_v by_o only_a scripture_n and_o a_o little_a further_o â_o further_o ibid._n c._n â_o that_o all_o the_o faith_n fuâe_v aught_o to_o have_v recourse_n &_o appeal_n unto_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n s._n athanasius_n anno_fw-la 340._o say_v agenâes_fw-la say_v in_o epist_n ad_fw-la solitarivitam_fw-la agenâes_fw-la when_o be_v it_o ever_o hear_v of_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v take_v the_o authority_n of_o her_o judgement_n from_o the_o emperor_n or_o when_o have_v this_o ever_o be_v count_v for_o judgement_n s_o basil_n anno_fw-la 80._o say_v athanasium_fw-la say_v epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la athanasium_fw-la that_o it_o do_v seem_v good_a unto_o he_o to_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o will_v send_v some_o with_o authority_n into_o the_o east_n to_o dissolve_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ariminensis_n s_o gregory_n naz_n anno_fw-la 380._o in_o his_o oration_n wherein_o he_o accuse_v himself_o for_o abstayn_v so_o long_o from_o his_o acclesiasticall_a function_n say_v you_v sheep_n do_v not_o you_o feed_v your_o pastor_n neither_o lift_v yourselves_o a_o above_o their_o office_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o you_o that_o you_o be_v true_o feed_v nether_a judge_n your_o judge_n nor_o prescribe_v law_n to_o the_o law_n maker_n s._n cyrill_n anno_fw-la
these_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a concern_v prologue_n concern_v apol._n 2._o adu_fw-la ruffinum_fw-la in_o prologue_n s._n hierome_n lie_n answer_v and_o explain_v himself_o say_v true_o i_o do_v not_o set_v down_o what_o i_o think_v but_o what_o the_o hebrew_n be_v accustom_v to_o say_v against_o we_o herein_o call_v there_o further_o ruffinus_n prologue_n ruffinus_n apol._n 2._o adu_fw-la ruffinum_fw-la in_o prologue_n a_o foolish_a sycophant_n for_o mistake_v and_o charge_v he_o with_o the_o hebrew_n opinion_n also_o in_o another_o place_n he_o most_o express_o place_v the_o in_fw-la the_o in_o machab_n in_o praefat_fw-la in_fw-la book_n of_o maccabee_n reject_v by_o the_o hebrew_n among_o the_o story_n of_o devyne_a scripture_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v of_o judith_n of_o judith_n judith_n the_o book_n of_o judith_n among_o the_o hebrew_n be_v read_v among_o holy_a write_n whole_a authority_n be_v not_o judge_v so_o sit_v to_o confirm_v thing_n that_o be_v in_o contention_n etc._n etc._n but_o because_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v say_v to_o have_v reckon_v this_o book_n in_o the_o number_n of_o holy_a scripture_n i_o rest_v content_a etc._n etc._n second_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v not_o general_o receive_v all_o at_o once_o but_o in_o so_o great_a variety_n of_o pretend_a scripture_n sundry_a book_n be_v for_o the_o time_n misdoubt_v or_o by_o some_o father_n and_o counsel_n omit_v or_o not_o receive_v which_o yet_o afterwards_o upon_o better_a search_n and_o consideration_n they_o be_v general_o acknowledge_v to_o conclude_v this_o point_n hear_v m._n bilson_n lord_n bishop_n of_o wânchester_n say_v 664._o say_v in_o his_o survey_v of_o châists_n suffering_n &c._n &c._n anno_fw-la 1604._o pag._n 664._o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o full_o receive_v in_o all_o place_n no_o not_o in_o eusebius_n tyme._n he_o say_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n jude_n the_o 2._o peter_n and_o 2._o john_n be_v contradict_v as_o not_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n be_v for_o a_o while_o contradict_v etc._n etc._n the_o church_n of_o syria_n do_v not_o receive_v the_o 2_o peter_n nor_o 2._o john_n the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n nor_o the_o apocalypse_n etc._n etc._n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v for_o the_o church_n of_o arabia_n will_v you_o hence_o therefore_o conclude_v that_o these_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o apostolical_a or_o that_o we_o need_v not_o receive_v they_o now_o because_o they_o be_v former_o doubt_v off_o &c_n &c_n so_o full_o do_v m._n bilson_n answer_v our_o adversary_n like_o usual_a objection_n against_o the_o maccabee_n and_o the_o other_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n now_o in_o question_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n only_o as_o be_v by_o our_o adversary_n confess_v may_v satisfy_v we_o at_o least_o in_o this_o point_n for_o m._n jewel_n say_v 241._o defence_n 1._o of_o his_o apolog_n pag._n 201._o &_o edition_n a_o 1571._o pag._n 241._o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n whereby_o to_o discern_v true_a scripture_n from_o false_a the_o protestant_n author_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n who_o bullinger_n so_o great_o commend_v in_o his_o preface_n thereof_o to_o the_o reader_n do_v affirm_v 75._o affirm_v cap._n 15._o fol._n 71_o 71._o &_o cap._n 16_o fol._n 74._o 75._o that_o we_o can_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v it_o not_o that_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o and_o witness_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o x_o article_n the_o protestants_n pretence_n of_o only_a scripture_n be_v frivolous_a and_o idle_a 219._o idle_a in_o his_o survey_v &c_n &c_n pag_n 219._o it_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o common_a practice_n and_o deceit_n of_o almost_o all_o novelliste_n to_o pretend_v only_a scripture_n usinge_v it_o as_o their_o last_o and_o only_a refuge_n thereby_o to_o continue_v their_o contention_n and_o to_o exempt_v themselves_o from_o all_o other_o final_a iudgmente_n whatsoever_o in_o this_o sort_n beza_n himself_o be_v note_v to_o evade_v witness_n m._n bancroft_n say_v a_o how_n beza_n discredit_v himself_o say_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v oppose_v against_o my_o exposition_n the_o authority_n of_o certain_a father_n i_o appeal_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereupon_o m._n bancroft_n infer_v say_v how_o crank_a be_v beza_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o brownist_n of_o amsterdam_n say_v to_o m._n balsons_n allegation_n from_o the_o father_n 103._o father_n apology_n print_n 1604._o pag_n 103._o let_v m._n bilson_n with_o these_o doctor_n know_v that_o unless_o they_o can_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n their_o prelacy_n etc._n etc._n all_o the_o colour_n they_o bring_v out_o of_o former_a time_n and_o writer_n be_v of_o no_o moment_n in_o this_o case_n m._n hooker_n say_v of_o the_o 38._o the_o eccl_n policy_n in_o his_o preface_n page_n 38._o anabaptiste_n the_o book_n of_o god_n they_o for_o the_o most_o part_n so_o admire_v that_o other_o disputation_n against_o their_o opinion_n then_o only_o by_o allegation_n of_o scripture_n they_o will_v not_o hear_v 2._o hear_v âb_v de_fw-la christ_n natura_fw-la pag._n 2._o in_o this_o sort_n do_v socinus_n a_o protestant_n against_o volanus_fw-la his_o protestant_n adversary_n give_v the_o stipp_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o error_n against_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n say_v to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o answer_v that_o which_o thou_o borrow_v from_o the_o papist_n etc._n etc._n especial_o where_o thou_o oppose_v to_o we_o the_o perpetual_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n very_o exellent_o doubtlese_v in_o this_o behalf_n have_v hosius_n the_o papist_n discourse_v against_o you_o wound_v you_o with_o your_o own_o sword_n and_o therefore_o you_o be_v no_o less_o saf_v in_o urge_v against_o i_o the_o church_n perpetual_a consent_n then_o be_v the_o papist_n in_o their_o urge_v thereof_o both_o against_o you_o and_o we_o and_o alittle_o further_o he_o say_v 222._o say_v pag._n 222._o we_o set_v before_o we_o in_o this_o question_n concern_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n none_o for_o master_n or_o interpreter_n but_o only_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n for_o we_o do_v not_o think_v that_o we_o be_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o man_n though_o never_o so_o learned_a of_o any_o council_n though_o in_o show_n never_o so_o holy_a &_o lawful_o assemble_v of_o any_o visible_a church_n though_o neveuer_o so_o perfect_a and_o universal_a even_o volanus_fw-la himself_o dispute_v against_o the_o jesuite_n be_v force_v to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o example_n say_n and_o deed_n of_o athanasius_n hierome_n augustine_n theodoret_n &_o other_o father_n who_o authority_n he_o now_o oppose_v against_o we_o as_o sacred_a thus_o much_o have_v i_o think_v good_a to_o remember_v that_o volanus_fw-la may_v rereave_v answer_n from_o himself_o when_o he_o so_o often_o infer_v against_o we_o the_o authority_n of_o learned_a man_n &_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o far_o socinus_n insomuch_o that_o a_o certain_a englih_n protestant_n author_n of_o the_o treatise_n entitle_v a_o brief_a answer_n to_o certain_a objection_n against_o the_o descension_n of_o christ_n into_o hell_n print_v at_o oxford_n by_o joseph_n barnes_n where_o he_o say_v &_o reprove_v this_o other_o protestant_n brother_n say_v where_o you_o saywe_v must_v build_v our_o faith_n one_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n tyinge_v we_o to_o the_o scripture_n only_o you_o give_v just_a occasion_n to_o think_v that_o you_o neither_o have_v the_o auntict_a father_n of_o christ_n church_n not_o their_o son_n succeed_v they_o agree_v which_o you_o in_o this_o point_n which_o impli_v a_o defence_n of_o some_o strange_a paradox_n these_o likewise_o he_o this_o kind_n of_o tergiversation_n under_o pretence_n of_o only_a scripture_n be_v and_o have_v be_v so_o infinite_o tedious_a to_o protestants_n themselves_o &_o so_o evident_o the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o to_o uphold_v all_o their_o dissension_n yet_o daily_a renewinge_v and_o uprisinge_v that_o m._n hooker_n say_v m._n 29._o m._n preface_n of_o his_o ec._n poo_o icy_a lect_v 6._o pag._n 28._o 29._o âera_o in_o his_o last_o book_n but_o one_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v now_o weary_a of_o such_o combat_n and_o encounter_n whether_o by_o word_n or_o writing_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o find_v that_o controversy_n be_v thereby_o make_v but_o brawl_n &_o therefore_o wish_v that_o in_o some_o common_a lawful_a assembly_n of_o church_n all_o these_o thyfte_n may_v be_v at_o once_o decree_v luther_n himself_o call_v the_o scripture_n ãâã_d scripture_n hosias_n âib_n 3_o contra_fw-la râcutud_fw-la see_v it_o also_o ãâã_d a_o book_n for_o heretic_n and_o other_o of_o his_o confederate_n 1._o confederate_n a_o janus_n cope_n dialog_n b._n c._n 19_o 1._o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n a_o phrase_n
ill_o beseeminge_v the_o scripture_n and_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n howsoever_o wrest_v and_o abuse_v by_o wicked_a man_n likewise_o beza_n himself_o say_v 2._o say_v beza_n praeface_n to_o his_o book_n entitle_v ad_fw-la octi_fw-la colioquâj_fw-la montis_fw-la vel_fw-la gaâbiâesis_fw-la respon_n pârt_n 1._o pag_n 2._o let_v all_o those_o thing_n be_v submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o learned_a and_o orthodoxal_a divine_v &_o especial_o of_o a_o free_a holy_a and_o lawful_a synod_n if_o god_n shall_v at_o any_o time_n grant_v any_o m_o hocker_n say_v again_o 26._o again_o hooker_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pag._n 26._o what_o success_n god_n may_v give_v to_o any_o such_o kind_n of_o conference_n or_o disputation_n we_o can_v tell_v but_o we_o be_v right_o sure_a of_o this_o that_o nature_n scripture_n and_o experience_n have_v all_o teach_v the_o world_n to_o seek_v for_o the_o endinge_a of_o contention_n by_o submit_v itself_o to_o some_o judicial_a and_o definitive_a sentence_n where_o unto_o neither_o part_n that_o contend_v may_v under_o any_o pretence_n refuse_v to_o stand_v and_o a_o little_a further_o 374._o further_o pag._n 28._o see_v also_o the_o title_n in_o m_n d._n council_n examen_fw-la etc._n etc._n pag._n 2._o 3_o 4._o &_o 5_o the_o also_o m._n b._n loâ_n in_o his_o perpetual_a government_n &c_n &c_n pag._n 370._o 372._o 374._o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v to_o have_v they_o do_v whatsoever_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o judicial_a and_o final_a decision_n shall_v determine_v yea_o though_o it_o seem_v in_o their_o private_a opinion_n to_o swerve_v utter_o from_o that_o which_o be_v right_a &c_n &c_n and_o that_o without_o this_o it_o be_v impossible_a we_o shall_v avoid_v confusion_n or_o ever_o hope_v to_o attain_v peace_n and_o certain_o our_o adversary_n hearein_o do_v but_o accord_v to_o the_o wholesome_a admonition_n of_o s._n austin_n say_v the_o verity_n of_o scripture_n be_v hold_v of_o we_o when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o please_v the_o universal_a church_n which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n commend_v and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v 33._o say_v austin_n tom_n 7._o lib._n 1._o cap_n 33._o whosoever_o fear_v to_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n let_v he_o ask_v council_n concern_v it_o of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n point_v unto_o whout_v any_o ambiguity_n m._n whitaker_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o question_n concern_v canonical_a scripture_n be_v to_o we_o determine_a 247._o determine_a adu_n stap_n l._n 2._o c._n 6_o p._n 270._o &_o &_o 57_o lib_n 2._o c._n 4._o pag_n 300._o 298_o &_o 14._o &_o 15_o against_o m._n williâ_n reignolds_n pag_n 44_o see_v the_o same_o in_o m._n hooker_n ca._n 3._o â_o 8._o pag._n 247._o not_o by_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o say_v he_o be_v private_a &_o secret_a be_v unfit_a to_o teach_v &_o resell_v other_o but_o as_o he_o confess_v by_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n a_o argument_n say_v he_o whereby_o may_v be_v argue_v and_o convince_v what_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o what_o be_v not_o the_o protestant_a author_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n who_o bullinger_n in_o his_o preface_n before_o the_o same_o book_n so_o high_o commend_v doubt_v not_o to_o say_v with_o s._n austin_n and_o tertullian_n we_o 75._o we_o the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n c._n 15._o pag_n 74_o 75._o can_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v it_o not_o that_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o and_o witness_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o âhe_n apostles_n this_o treatise_n be_v translate_v out_o of_o latin_a into_o english_a by_o john_n tomkins_n and_o print_v 1â79_n m_o hooker_n say_v 102._o say_v in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o eccles_n polic_a c_o 5._o 14_o pag._n 86._o ib_n d_o l_o 2._o 5_o 4_o pag._n 102._o of_o thing_n necessary_a the_o very_o chief_a be_v to_o know_v what_o â_z we_o be_v bind_v to_o esteem_v holy_a which_o point_n say_v he_o be_v confess_v impossible_a for_o the_o scripture_n itself_o to_o teach_v again_o it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v he_o which_o do_v or_o possible_a can_v assure_v we_o that_o we_o do_v well_o to_o think_v it_o be_v h_o his_o word_n for_o if_o any_o one_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n dâd_v give_v testimony_n of_o all_o yet_o still_o that_o scripture_n which_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o rest_n will_v require_v a_o other_o scripture_n to_o give_v credit_n unto_o it_o neither_o can_v we_o come_v unto_o any_o pause_n where_o on_o to_o rest_n unless_o beside_o scripture_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n that_o may_v assure_v we_o etc._n etc._n 1â6_n lib._n 3._o s._n 8._o pag._n 146._o &_o lib_n 2_o li_n 7._o pag_n 1â6_n which_o also_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n church_n the_o 11._o article_n protestant_n disagree_v translation_n m._n bruges_n say_v 6_o say_v apology_n sect_n 6_o that_o the_o approve_a protestant_n translation_n have_v many_o omission_n many_o addition_n which_o some_o time_n obscure_a some_o time_n pervert_v the_o sense_n m._n carleââ_n in_o his_o book_n that_o christ_n go_v not_o down_o to_o hell_n have_v discover_v many_o fault_n in_o the_o english_a bibles_n infer_v 241._o infer_v pag_n 116._o &_o 241._o that_o the_o english_a protestant_n in_o many_o place_n detorte_n the_o scripture_n from_o their_o right_a sense_n and_o show_v themselves_o to_o love_v darkness_n more_o they_o light_n falsehood_n more_o than_o truth_n they_o have_v corrupt_v and_o deprave_a the_o sense_n obscure_v the_o truth_n deceive_v the_o ignorant_a and_o supplant_v the_o simple_a m._n broughten_a also_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a linguiste_n in_o england_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o privy_a council_n desire_v they_o to_o procure_v speedy_o a_o new_a translation_n o_o because_o that_o say_v he_o which_o be_v now_o in_o england_n be_v full_a of_o error_n and_o in_o his_o advertisement_n of_o corruption_n to_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n he_o say_v that_o their_o public_a translation_n of_o scripture_n into_o english_a be_v such_o as_o it_o pervert_v the_o text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o fover_n hundred_o and_o forty_o eight_o place_n and_o that_o it_o cause_v million_o of_o million_o to_o reject_v the_o new_a testament_n and_o to_o run_v to_o eternal_a flame_n 110._o flame_n in_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n part_n 11._o folio_fw-la 110._o charles_n molineus_n say_v that_o caluin_n in_o his_o harmony_n make_v the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o leap_v up_o and_o do_v as_o the_o truth_n itself_o declare_v he_o use_v violence_n to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o in_o many_o place_n clean_o transpose_v it_o and_o beside_o this_o he_o add_v to_o the_o text_n these_o he_o 413._o he_o tom_fw-mi 2._o ad_fw-la luther_n lib._n de_fw-la sacramento_n fol._n 412._o l._n 413._o zuinglius_fw-la after_o detection_n of_o many_o corruption_n in_o luther_n conclude_v thus_o see_v how_o thy_o case_n stand_v luther_n that_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n thou_o be_v seenne_n to_o be_v a_o manifest_a and_o common_a corrupter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o thing_n thou_o can_v never_o deny_v before_o any_o creature_n how_o much_o be_v we_o ashamed_a of_o thou_o who_o hitherto_o have_v esteem_v thou_o beyond_o all_o measure_n and_o now_o try_v thou_o to_o be_v such_o a_o false_a fellow_n these_o he_o castalio_n say_v that_o to_o note_v all_o the_o error_n of_o beza_n in_o translate_n the_o new_a testament_n the_o work_n will_v require_v to_o great_a a_o volume_n 46._o volume_n in_o the_o fume_n of_o the_o conference_n before_o his_o majesty_n pag._n 46._o the_o king_n think_v the_o geneva_n translation_n to_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o other_o m._n park_n in_o his_o apology_n of_o three_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n concern_v christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o first_o testamonie_n say_v to_o m._n d._n wâllet_n as_o for_o the_o geneva_n bibles_n it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o either_o they_o may_v be_v purge_v from_o those_o manifold_a error_n which_o be_v both_o in_o the_o text_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n or_o else_o utter_o prohibit_v in_o a_o treatise_n entitle_v a_o petition_n direct_v to_o her_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n &c_n &c_n the_o puritan_n say_v 76._o pag._n 76._o our_o translation_n of_o the_o psalm_n comprise_v in_o our_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n do_v in_o addition_n subtraction_n and_o alteration_n differre_fw-la from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o twoe_o hundred_o place_n 75._o pag._n 75._o in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o do_v therefore_o profess_v the_o rest_n to_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o a_o man_n with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n may_v subscribe_v thereto_o the_o minister_n of_o lincoln_n diocese_n term_v the_o
field_n say_v 19_o say_v lib._n 1._o de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la c._n â0_n pag._n 19_o the_o person_n of_o they_o of_o who_o the_o church_n consist_v be_v visible_a their_o profession_n know_v even_o to_o the_o profane_a and_o wicked_a of_o the_o world_n ediâ_n the_o same_o confessatâ_n melancthon_v in_o loc_fw-fr comun_v ediâ_n and_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o church_n can_v be_v invisible_a and_o again_o it_o be_v true_a that_o bellarmine_n labour_v in_o vain_a in_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v and_o always_o have_v be_v a_o visible_a church_n and_o that_o not_o consist_v of_o some_o few_o scatter_a christian_n with_o out_o order_n of_o ministry_n or_o use_n of_o sacrament_n for_o all_o this_o we_o do_v most_o willing_o yield_v unto_o howsoever_o perhaps_o some_o few_o have_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o etc._n etc._n and_o again_o he_o say_v 324._o 1561._o c._n de_fw-fr eceb_fw-mi pag._n 324._o 72._o 324._o lib._n 3._o de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la cap._n 6._o pag._n 72._o it_o be_v most_o fond_a and_o frivolous_a that_o some_o demand_n of_o we_o where_o our_o church_n be_v before_o luther_n begin_v for_o we_o say_v it_o be_v where_o now_o it_o be_v if_o they_o ask_v we_o which_o we_o answer_v it_o be_v the_o know_v and_o apparent_a church_n in_o the_o world_n wherein_o all_o our_o father_n live_v and_o dye_v wherein_o luther_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v baptise_a etc._n etc._n and_o most_o exceed_o bouldhy_a he_o there_o further_o say_v none_o of_o the_o point_n of_o false_a doctrine_n and_o error_n which_o they_o now_o maintain_v and_o we_o condemn_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n etc._n etc._n also_o he_o proceed_v yet_o further_o with_o like_a incredible_a boldness_n and_o say_v 76._o say_v ibid._n lib_n 3._o cap._n â_o pag._n 76._o we_o most_o firm_o believe_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v and_o dye_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a protestant_n church_n of_o god_n in_o which_o undoubted_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o that_o they_o which_o teach_v embrace_v and_o believe_v those_o damnable_a error_n which_o the_o romanistes_n now_o defend_v against_o we_o be_v only_o a_o particular_a faction_n etc._n etc._n to_o all_o which_o that_o may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n which_o follow_v neither_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n if_o our_o adversary_n doubt_v not_o to_o make_v undue_a and_o pretend_a claim_n to_o the_o ancient_a father_n see_v they_o blush_v not_o to_o affirm_v thus_o exceed_o bold_o and_o untrue_o of_o the_o time_n in_o which_o luther_n first_o begin_v which_o be_v yet_o within_o the_o memory_n of_o this_o present_a age_n the_o protestant_n chief_a grownde_n for_o their_o visible_a church_n take_v from_o waldo_n wiclyffe_n and_o husse_v etc._n etc._n confute_v waldo_n be_v first_o a_o catholic_a and_o no_o protestant_n anno_fw-la 1220._o 628._o 1220._o act._n in_o on_o pag._n 628._o m._n fox_n testify_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_n layman_n arich_v merchant_n of_o lion_n in_o france_n and_o so_o unlearned_a that_o he_o give_v reward_n to_o certain_a learned_a man_n to_o translate_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o he_o and_o certain_a other_o work_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o be_v thus_o holpen_v as_o m._n fox_n report_v he_o confer_v the_o form_n of_o religion_n in_o his_o time_n to_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n where_o upon_o say_v 41._o say_v pag._n 41._o m._n fox_n sprunge_v up_o the_o doctrine_n and_o name_n of_o those_o which_o be_v call_v waldense_n anno_fw-la 1218._o and_o again_o he_o say_v 45._o say_v pag._n 45._o that_o his_o follower_n be_v so_o unlearned_a likewise_o that_o some_o of_o they_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o s._n john_n 1._o john_n john_n cap._n 1._o svi_fw-la non_fw-la receperunt_fw-la eum_fw-la swine_n do_v not_o receive_v he_o luther_n say_v of_o the_o waldense_n â75_n waldense_n in_o joachim_n cameratius_n de_fw-fr frattun_n orthodox_n eccleââis_fw-la etc._n etc._n pag._n â75_n they_o have_v that_o fault_n that_o because_o they_o will_v avoid_v the_o subtlety_n and_o craftiness_n of_o sophister_n and_o monk_n they_o do_v altogether_o abstain_v from_o all_o study_n of_o art_n and_o a_o little_a before_o he_o say_v many_o of_o they_o indeed_o have_v never_o at_o any_o time_n see_v the_o holy_a bible_n here_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o be_v first_o no_n protestant_n wicklyffe_n anno_fw-la 1370._o m._n stowe_n say_v 465._o say_v annal_n of_o england_n print_v be_v 1592._o pag_n 464._o and_o 465._o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a priest_n and_o parson_n of_o lutterworth_n in_o licestershire_n and_o that_o he_o first_o invey_v against_o the_o church_n for_o that_o he_o have_v be_v deprive_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n from_o a_o certain_a benefice_n m._n fox_n say_v 85._o say_v act_n mon_fw-fr psg_n 85._o he_o be_v our_o country_n man_n and_o that_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n all_o the_o world_n be_v in_o a_o most_o desperate_a and_o vile_a estate_n and_o that_o lamentable_a ignorance_n and_o darkness_n of_o god_n truth_n have_v over_o shadow_v the_o whole_a earth_n when_o john_n wicklyffe_n step_v forth_o &c._n &c._n as_o the_o morning_n star_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o cloud_n and_o again_o 1596._o again_o pag_n 391._o line_n 60._o print_v an._n 1596._o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o horrible_a darkness_n when_o there_o seem_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o be_v no_o one_o so_o little_a spark_n of_o pure_a doctrine_n leave_v or_o remain_v wickliff_n by_o god_n providence_n rise_v up_o through_o who_o the_o lord_n will_v first_o awaken_v and_o rail_v up_o again_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n m_o d._n humphrey_n say_v 439_o say_v in_o vita_fw-la julli_fw-la print_v at_o london_n 1573._o pag._n 263._o epist_n hist_o eccles_n cent_n 6.10.11_o pag_n 439_o our_o john_n wicklyffe_n be_v almost_o the_o first_o trumppet_n er_fw-mi of_o this_o gospel_n in_o these_o latter_a day_n osiander_n say_v k_n the_o book_n of_o wicklyffe_n be_v not_o pure_a in_o all_o thing_n for_o he_o have_v not_o man_n in_o those_o time_n that_o may_v brotherly_o admonish_v hime_n if_o he_o shall_v go_v beyond_o his_o limit_n of_o all_o the_o horrible_a gross_a error_n which_o he_o hold_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o be_v so_o unknowe_a unto_o he_o that_o as_o waldensis_n who_o live_v in_o the_o same_o time_n with_o he_o affirm_v he_o exceed_v in_o the_o contrary_a defend_v humane_a merit_n as_o the_o damnable_a heretic_n pelagius_n hold_v they_o in_o so_o much_o that_o melanchâhou_n say_v of_o he_o 622._o he_o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la frideric_a micon_n in_o lib._n epist_n zuinglij_fw-la &_o occolompadiâ_n pag._n 622._o very_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v nor_o hold_v the_o justice_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v of_o he_o i_o have_v find_v he_o in_o many_o other_o error_n whereby_o one_o may_v judge_v of_o his_o spirit_n here_o also_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o be_v first_o no_n protestant_n john_n husse_fw-fr anno_fw-la 1400._o m._n jacob_n say_v antichristo_fw-la say_v in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n &_o minister_n of_o england_n pag._n 13._o luther_n in_o collog_n germanâcis_fw-la cap._n de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la be_v he_o be_v a_o catholic_n priest_n that_o he_o say_v mass_n even_o to_o his_o die_a day_n and_o be_v so_o catholick_o resolve_v in_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o luther_n say_v n_o the_o papist_n burn_v john_n husse_v when_o as_o yet_o he_o depart_v not_o a_o finger_n breadth_n from_o the_o papacy_n for_o he_o teach_v the_o same_o which_o the_o papist_n do_v only_o he_o find_v fault_n with_o their_o vice_n and_o wicked_a life_n against_o the_o pope_n he_o commit_v nothing_o m._n fox_n say_v 290._o say_v m._n apoc_fw-la cap._n 11._o pag._n 290._o what_o do_v husse_v at_o any_o time_n teach_v or_o defend_v in_o the_o council_n wherein_o he_o do_v not_o rather_o seem_v superstitious_o to_o consent_v with_o the_o papist_n what_o do_v the_o papish_a faith_n decree_n concern_v transubstantiation_n which_o he_o likewise_o with_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o confirm_v whoe_o celebrate_a mass_n more_o religioussie_a than_o he_o etc._n etc._n what_o therefore_o shall_v we_o say_v he_o have_v commt_v for_o which_o he_o be_v not_o together_o with_o the_o roman_a sea_n to_o be_v absolve_v and_o again_o speak_v of_o his_o follower_n he_o say_v 260._o say_v act._n mon_fw-fr pag._n 260._o the_o bohemians_n be_v demand_v in_o what_o point_n they_o do_v differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o only_a proposition_n which_o they_o there_o upon_o propund_v be_v these_o fover_n article_n first_o the_o necessity_n of_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n which_o point_n protestant_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v but_o a_o matter_n of_o indifferency_n see_v 106._o see_v mel._n in_o centur._n epist_n theolog_n pag._n â52_n &_o jewel_n in_o
the_o whole_a church_n be_v commit_v to_o bless_a s._n peter_n prince_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o little_a beneath_o behold_v he_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v give_v to_o he_o the_o care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o principality_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o s._n bede_n say_v 142._o say_v homil_n in_o vigilla_n s._n andreâ_n in_o illud_fw-la intuitus_fw-la eum_fw-la &c_n &c_n joan._n 142._o he_o see_v the_o simplicity_n of_o his_o hart_n he_o see_v the_o courage_n of_o his_o mind_n by_o who_o merit_n he_o be_v to_o be_v place_v over_o every_o church_n and_o again_o 720._o again_o and_o homil_n in_o sâââo_n petri_n &_o pauli_n anno_fw-la 720._o therefore_o say_v he_o s._n peter_n who_o confess_v christ_n with_o true_a faith_n affect_v he_o with_o true_a love_n and_o receive_v especial_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o principallitie_n of_o judicial_a power_n that_o all_o believer_n in_o the_o world_n may_v understand_v that_o whosoever_o do_v separate_v himself_o after_o any_o manner_n from_o that_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o society_n of_o he_o he_o can_v neither_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o bond_n of_o his_o sin_n nor_o enter_v the_o gate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n s._n bernard_n say_v eugenium_fw-la say_v epist_n ââ7_n ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la the_o place_n wherein_o thou_o stand_v be_v holy_a ground_n it_o be_v peter_n place_n the_o place_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o his_o foot_n stand_v it_o be_v his_o place_n who_o our_o lord_n constitute_v master_n of_o his_o house_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o his_o possession_n and_o again_o 1140._o again_o lib_n 2_o de_fw-la consideret_fw-la speak_v of_o peter_n ano._n 1140._o go_v like_o our_o lord_n upon_o the_o sea_n he_o do_v manifest_v himself_o the_o only_a vicar_n of_o christ_n who_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v over_o one_o people_n but_o over_o all_o even_o as_o there_o be_v many_o water_n many_o people_n these_o sour_a and_o twenty_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n as_o the_o sour_a and_o twenty_o voice_n of_o the_o elder_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n do_v evident_o demonstrate_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n as_o well_o the_o greek_a as_o the_o latin_a to_o which_o nothing_o certain_o can_v be_v answer_v other_o wise_a they_o luther_n and_o caluin_n say_v of_o leo_n pope_n they_o suffer_v humane_a thing_n &_o be_v deceive_v werfore_o to_o make_v it_o if_o possible_a yet_o more_o plain_a seâ_n here_o the_o aduersaire_fw-fr the_o adversary_n caluin_n allege_v in_o m._n whitgifte_n defence_n say_v 173._o say_v pag._n 173._o the_o twelve_o apostle_n have_v one_o among_o they_o to_o govern_v the_o rest_n musculus_fw-la say_v 469._o say_v ibid._n 469._o peter_n be_v say_v in_o many_o place_n to_o have_v be_v chief_a a_o among_o the_o rest_n which_o we_o deny_v not_o m._n whitgift_n say_v 375._o say_v ibid_fw-la pag._n 375._o among_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o there_o be_v one_o chief_a etc._n etc._n that_o have_v chief_a authority_n over_o the_o rest_n etc._n etc._n that_o schism_n may_v be_v compose_v 70._o compose_v pag._n 595._o pag._n 62._o 63._o 65._o 68_o 70._o and_n again_o in_o somuch_o as_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o answer_v certain_a place_n of_o scripture_n object_v by_o our_o adversary_n against_o peter_n primary_n m._n fulke_o speak_v of_o leo_n and_o gregory_n bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o about_o anno_fw-la 450._o the_o other_o about_o anno_fw-la 600._o say_v 248._o say_v in_o his_o retentive_a against_o bristowe_v motive_n &c._n &c._n pag._n 248._o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n have_v wrought_v in_o that_o seat_n of_o rome_n near_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n before_o they_o so_o long_o before_o they_o do_v the_o roman_a sea_n begin_v to_o be_v papal_a and_o then_o great_o increase_v they_o be_v so_o deceive_v with_o long_a continuance_n of_o error_n that_o they_o think_v the_o dignity_n of_o peter_n be_v much_o moreover_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o god_n do_v allow_v 3._o allow_v cent._n 4._o col_fw-fr 1215._o l._n 2_o col_fw-fr 555_o l_o â0_n col_fw-fr 558._o l._n 54_o cent._n 3._o col_fw-fr 84._o l._n 75_o &_o 59_o col._n 85._o l._n 3._o the_o father_n for_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o peter_n namely_o s._n hierome_n hââary_n nazianzen_n tertullian_n cyprian_n &_o origen_n be_v reprehend_v by_o the_o centuriste_n caluin_n say_v sect_n say_v instit_fw-la l._n 4._o cap._n 6._o sect_n the_o church_n be_v found_v in_o peter_n because_o it_o be_v say_v upon_o this_o rock_n etc._n etc._n as_o many_o of_o the_o father_n expound_v it_o but_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v against_o it_o etc._n etc._n 2._o etc._n cent._n 6._o col_fw-fr 58._o a_o line_n 2._o the_o father_n doubt_v not_o public_o to_o celebrate_v a_o yearly_a festival_n day_n in_o honour_n of_o s._n peter_n sea_n which_o respect_v no_o other_o sea_n ever_o have_v whereunto_o danaeus_n answer_v affirm_v the_o father_n assertion_n to_o be_v the_o judgment_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n then_o corrupt_v and_o bewitch_v or_o make_v blind_a with_o this_o error_n 107._o error_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la &c._n &c._n against_o the_o plea_n of_o the_o innocent_a print_a â_o bol_n pag._n 10._o b._n and_o 107._o m_o d._n covell_n have_v speak_v of_o one_o above_o the_o 275._o the_o n_z resp_n ad_fw-la bellar._n disp_a part_n 1._o pag._n 275._o rest_z to_o suppress_v the_o seed_n of_o dissension_n say_v to_o the_o puritan_n if_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a mean_n to_o prevent_v schism_n and_o dissension_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n when_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v far_o more_o abundant_a and_o eminent_a than_o they_o now_o be_v nay_o if_o the_o twelve_o be_v not_o like_a to_o agree_v except_o there_o have_v be_v one_o chiese_n among_o they_o for_o so_o say_v hierome_n among_o the_o twelve_o one_o be_v therefore_o choose_v that_o a_o chief_a or_o head_n be_v appoint_v occasion_n of_o dissension_n may_v be_v prevent_v &c_n &c_n how_o can_v they_o think_v that_o equality_n will_v keep_v all_o the_o pastor_n in_o the_o world_n in_o peace_n and_o unity_n etc._n etc._n for_o in_o all_o society_n authority_n which_o can_v be_v where_o all_o be_v equal_a must_v procure_v unity_n and_o obedience_n also_o he_o say_v b._n say_v pag._n 10._o b._n that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o cease_v with_o the_o apostle_n these_o he_o melanchthon_n say_v from_o the_o opinion_n of_o himself_o and_o other_o his_o brethren_n â_o brethren_n in_o the_o book_n entitle_v centuria_fw-la epâ_n theolog_fw-la etc._n etc._n epist_n 74._o que_fw-la est_fw-la melancthonis_n â_o as_o certain_a bishop_n be_v precedent_n over_o many_o church_n so_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v precedent_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o this_o canonical_a policy_n no_o wise_a man_n as_o i_o think_v do_v or_o aught_o to_o disallow_v etc._n etc._n for_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o my_o opinion_n profitable_a to_o this_o end_n that_o consent_n of_o doctrine_n may_v be_v retain_v wherefore_o a_o agreement_n may_v easy_o be_v establish_v in_o his_o article_n of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n if_o other_o point_n can_v be_v agree_v upon_o these_o he_o luther_n himself_o say_v 37._o say_v in_o loc_n commun_n class_n 1._o cap._n 37._o for_o as_o much_o as_o god_n will_v have_v one_o true_a catholic_a church_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o be_v necessary_a there_o shall_v be_v some_o one_o people_n yea_o some_o one_o father_n of_o that_o one_o people_n choose_v unto_o who_o and_o his_o posterity_n the_o whole_a world_n may_v have_v recourse_n and_o become_v one_o sheepfold_a so_o that_o of_o all_o nation_n and_o of_o infinite_a diverse_a manner_n yet_o there_o may_v be_v make_v one_o church_n 471._o church_n pag_n 470._o 471._o for_o the_o confess_a government_n of_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n see_v m._n whitgifte_n defence_n m._n cartwryght_o say_v 582._o say_v in_o his_o 2._o reply_n part_n 1_o p._n 582._o if_o a_o archbishop_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o call_n of_o a_o prounciall_a council_n when_o bishop_n be_v divide_v it_o be_v necessary_a there_o be_v also_o a_o pope_n which_o may_v call_v a_o general_a council_n when_o division_n be_v between_o archbishop_n for_o when_o the_o church_n of_o one_o province_n be_v divide_v from_o other_o as_o you_o ask_v i_o so_o i_o ask_v you_o who_o shall_v assemble_v they_o together_o whoe_o shall_v admonish_v they_o of_o their_o duty_n when_o they_o be_v assemble_v if_o you_o can_v find_v away_o how_o this_o may_v be_v do_v without_o a_o pope_n the_o way_n be_v also_o find_v whereby_o the_o church_n may_v be_v disburden_v of_o the_o archbishop_n likewise_o the_o council_n of_o
wherefore_o this_o title_n he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v reject_v etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v nevertheless_o evident_a by_o other_o place_n that_o gregory_n think_v that_o the_o charge_n and_o principallitie_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v commit_v to_o peter_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o gregory_n think_v not_o that_o peter_n be_v for_o this_o can_v so_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n these_z he_o which_o be_v so_o plain_a that_o in_o place_n of_o much_o more_o that_o may_v be_v say_v i_o think_v this_o may_v suffice_v especial_o when_o to_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n do_v no_o less_o detest_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n whereby_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v no_o bishop_n in_o god_n church_n but_o himself_o than_o gregory_n or_o pelagius_n do_v the_o 16._o article_n of_o freewill_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n a_o man_n have_v always_o freewill_n as_o well_o in_o morale_fw-mi thing_n that_o be_v good_a as_o evil_a and_o also_o pertain_v either_o to_o the_o salvation_n or_o destruction_n of_o the_o soul_n he_o be_v never_o bind_v or_o constrain_v to_o any_o necessity_n of_o syninge_v scripture_n 24.11_o scripture_n reg_n 24.11_o choice_n be_v give_v thou_o of_o three_o thing_n choose_v one_o of_o these_o which_o thou_o will_v that_o i_o may_v do_v it_o to_o thou_o 3.9_o thou_o 3._o reg._n 3.9_o ask_v what_o thou_o will_v that_o i_o may_v give_v it_o thou_o 25_o thou_o deut._n â0_n 25_o consider_v that_o i_o have_v set_v before_o thou_o this_o day_n life_n and_o good_a and_o contrariwise_o death_n and_o evil_a &c_n &c_n 19_o &c_n v._o 19_o i_o have_v propose_v to_o you_o life_n and_o death_n blessing_n and_o curse_v choose_v therefore_o life_n that_o both_o thou_o and_o thy_o seed_n may_v live_v 8._o live_v ica_fw-la 14_o 8._o behold_v i_o give_v before_o you_o the_o way_n of_o life_n and_o the_o way_n of_o death_n 14.17.18_o death_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la 15._o v_o 14.17.18_o he_o have_v set_v before_o thou_o water_n and_o sire_n to_o which_o thou_o will_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n before_o man_n there_o be_v life_n and_o death_n good_a and_o evil_a what_o please_v he_o shall_v be_v give_v he_o 30.10_o he_o ibid._n cap._n 30.10_o he_o that_o can_v transgress_v and_o have_v not_o transgress_v and_o do_v evil_n and_o have_v not_o do_v â7_n do_v matth._n 23._o â7_n o_o jerusalem_n jerusalem_n how_o often_o will_v i_o gather_v together_o thy_o child_n as_o the_o hen_n do_v gather_v together_o her_o chicken_n under_o her_o wing_n and_o thou_o will_v not_o â7_n not_o joh._n 7._o â7_n if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o let_v he_o he_o drink_v 7.1_o drink_v 2._o cor._n 7.1_o have_v therefore_o these_o promise_n my_o dear_a let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o inquination_n of_o the_o slesse_a and_o spirit_n 5.14_o spirit_n ephes_n 5.14_o a_o rise_v thou_o that_o sleep_v and_o a_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o christ_n will_n illuminat_fw-la thou_o see_v therefore_o brethren_n how_o you_o walk_v wary_o not_o as_o unwise_a but_o as_o wise_a redeem_v the_o time_n because_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a ââ_o evil_a phil._n 4._o ââ_o i_o can_v all_o thing_n in_o he_o that_o strengthen_v i_o 5._o i_o coloss_n 4_o 5._o walk_v with_o wisdom_n to_o ward_n they_o that_o be_v without_o redeem_v the_o tyme._n 16._o tyme._n 1._o tim._n q_o 16._o attend_v to_o thyself_o and_o doctrine_n 2.19_o doctrine_n 1._o tim._n 2.19_o let_v every_o one_o depart_v from_o iniquity_n that_o name_v the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n etc._n etc._n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v cleanse_v himself_o from_o these_o etc._n etc._n 4.18_o etc._n hebr._n 4.18_o let_v we_o go_v therefore_o with_o confidence_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n 1â_n grace_n ibid._n cap._n 12_o 1â_n for_o which_o cause_n stretch_v up_o the_o slack_a hand_n and_o the_o loose_a knee_n and_o make_v straight_o the_o step_n of_o your_o foot_n that_o no_o man_n halt_v err_v but_o rather_o be_v heal_v 4.8_o heal_v joan._n 4.8_o approach_v to_o god_n and_o he_o will_v approach_v to_o you_o cleanse_v your_o hand_n you_o sinner_n and_o purify_v your_o heart_n you_o double_v of_o mind_n 1.22_o mind_n 1._o pet._n 1.22_o in_o the_o sincere_a love_n of_o fraternity_n from_o the_o heart_n love_v you_o one_o a_o other_o earnest_o 7_o earnest_o 1._o joan._n â_o 7_o little_a child_n let_v no_o man_n seduce_v you_o 20_o you_o apoc._n â_o 20_o behold_v i_o stand_v at_o the_o door_n and_o knock_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v here_o my_o voice_n and_o open_v the_o gate_n i_o will_v enter_v into_o he_o and_o will_v sup_v with_o he_o and_o he_o with_o i_o father_n pope_n clement_n who_o live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n an._n 80._o recognit_fw-la lib._n 3._o recognit_fw-la say_v you_o speak_v how_o do_v god_n judge_v every_o man_n by_o his_o deed_n according_a to_o truth_n if_o he_o have_v not_o in_o his_o power_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n if_o this_o be_v hold_v all_o thing_n be_v frustrate_a in_o vain_a shall_v the_o study_n be_v of_o follow_v better_a thing_n also_o in_o vain_a be_v judge_n over_o law_n and_o punish_v they_o which_o do_v evil_a for_o they_o have_v not_o in_o their_o powen_a to_o resist_v sin_n 4._o lib._n de_fw-fr diâin_fw-fr nomi_fw-la cap._n 4._o par_fw-fr 4._o s._n dionysius_n areopag_n anno_o 80._o saiâk_n z_o but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v infirmity_n do_v not_o deserve_v punishment_n but_o pardon_v if_o therefore_o he_o can_v not_o resist_v perchance_o it_o may_v righty_a be_v object_v but_o if_o there_o begve_v force_n from_o the_o chief_a good_a god_n who_o as_o holy_a write_n teach_v do_v give_v simple_o sufficient_a to_o all_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v pardon_v s._n ignatius_n disciple_n to_o s._n john_n evangelist_n sianos_fw-es evangelist_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la magne_n sianos_fw-es say_v for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o action_n themselves_o have_v their_o reward_n and_o life_n be_v promise_v to_o obedience_n but_o death_n to_o disobedience_n and_o every_o one_o that_o have_v choose_v either_o this_o or_o that_o do_v follow_v that_o which_o he_o have_v choose_v let_v we_o fly_v death_n and_o choose_v life_n and_o a_o little_a beneath_o if_o any_o man_n give_v himself_o to_o piety_n he_o be_v the_o man_n of_o god_n if_o to_o wickedness_n of_o the_o devil_n this_o be_v not_o do_v by_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o seedome_n of_o the_o mind_n s._n justine_n martyr_n anno_fw-la 150._o say_v antoninum_fw-la say_v in_o apolegia_fw-la ad_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la antoninum_fw-la unless_o mankind_n can_v both_o fly_v foul_a and_o undecent_a thing_n and_o follow_v fair_a and_o good_a thing_n of_o his_o own_o freewill_n it_o be_v without_o all_o cause_n and_o blame_v of_o they_o howsoever_o thing_n be_v do_v but_o we_o teach_v that_o he_o can_v of_o his_o own_o free_a will_n and_o accord_n both_o do_v well_o and_o ill_o and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n nei-should_a he_o be_v worthy_a of_o reward_n or_o praise_n if_o he_o do_v not_o choose_v a_o good_a thing_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n s._n iraenaus_n anno_fw-la 160._o say_v 71._o say_v lib._n 4_o ca._n 71._o where_n christ_n say_v how_o often_o will_v i_o gather_v together_o thy_o son_n &_o thou_o will_v not_o do_v manifest_n the_o law_n of_o freewill_n in_o man_n because_o god_n make_v he_o free_a from_o the_o begin_n and_o he_o conclude_v they_o which_o do_v good_a work_n shall_v receive_v glory_n and_o honour_n because_o they_o have_v do_v good_a when_o they_o may_v do_v evil_a but_o those_o which_o do_v not_o work_v this_o good_a shall_v receive_v the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n because_o they_o have_v not_o do_v good_a when_o they_o may_v have_v do_v it_o observe_v also_o here_o a_o excellent_a testimony_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a work_n s._n clâââ_n alexand._n anno_fw-la 190._o say_v ãâã_d say_v lib._n 1._o ãâã_d because_o free_v chov_n and_o desire_n do_v first_o make_v sin_n punishemente_n be_v worthy_o inflict_v et_fw-la infra_fw-la which_o thing_n when_o they_o be_v so_o both_o to_o be_v free_a from_o ignorance_n and_o from_o evell_a and_o delightful_a choice_n and_o above_o all-thing_n not_o to_o assent_v unto_o those_o deceitful_a fantasy_n and_o sight_n be_v place_v in_o our_o power_n s._n athanasius_n anno_fw-la 340._o say_v principium_fw-la say_v oratione_fw-la contra_fw-la idola_fw-la circa_fw-la principium_fw-la the_o soul_n be_v free_a and_o at_o this_o own_o will_n for_o as_o it_o can_v incline_v itself_o unto_o good_a et_fw-la infra_fw-la which_o when_o it_o do_v behold_v the_o free_a command_n and_o will_n of_o itself_o it_o do_v perceive_v itself_o to_o be_v able_a to_o use_v the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n unto_o both_o part_n both_o unto_o those_o which_o be_v and_o unto_o those_o which_o be_v not_o but_o those_o which_o be_v i_o call_v good_a those_o which_o be_v not_o
pray_v for_o we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o overcome_v by_o any_o tentation_n again_o epiph_n again_o serm._n 5._o epiph_n confirm_v friendship_n with_o the_o angel_n patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n and_o join_v yourselves_o to_o the_o martyr_n covet_v their_o riches_n and_o by_o good_a contention_n and_o emulation_n contend_v and_o strive_v for_o their_o favour_n s._n justine_n martyr_n anno_fw-la 150._o say_v church_n say_v in_o 2_o apolog_fw-la 2._o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o christian_n explicate_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o worship_v &_o adore_v he_o god_n the_o father_n and_o his_o son_n who_o come_v and_o teach_v we_o these_o thing_n and_o we_o worship_n in_o word_n &_o deed_n the_o whole_a troop_n of_o other_o that_o follow_v &_o such_o like_a good_a angel_n earnest_o teach_v it_o to_o all_o that_o desire_v to_o know_v how_o we_o be_v teach_v &_o instruct_v origen_n anno_fw-la 230._o say_v diversos_fw-la say_v homil_n 3._o in_o diversos_fw-la the_o memory_n of_o these_o as_o it_o be_v worthy_a be_v always_o celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n 79._o church_n haeres_fw-la 79._o s._n epiphanius_n anno_fw-la 309._o refelli_v their_o error_n who_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n as_o unto_o a_o god_n fear_v lest_o by_o this_o occasion_n their_o shall_v be_v no_o honour_n give_v unto_o she_o as_o the_o heretic_n of_o our_o time_n now_o put_v in_o practice_n he_o repeat_v very_o often_o these_o word_n let_v mary_n be_v have_v in_o honour_n god_n adore_v s._n chrysostome_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v maximo_fw-la say_v homil_n de_fw-fr sanctis_fw-la inuentio_fw-la &_o maximo_fw-la you_o do_v not_o worship_v the_o saint_n of_o ancient_a time_n and_o these_o late_a after_o a_o diverse_a manner_n but_o all_o with_o the_o same_o alacrity_n of_o mind_n infra_fw-la and_o the_o martyr_n that_o we_o worship_v this_o day_n be_v present_a infra_fw-la and_o therefore_o let_v we_o often_o visit_v they_o adore_v their_o sepulcher_n etc._n etc._n s._n cyrill_n alex._n anno_fw-la 430._o say_v medium_n say_v lib._n in_o iu._n julianum_fw-la ultra_fw-la medium_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a martyr_n be_v become_v god_n but_o we_o be_v accustom_v to_o give_v they_o all_o honour_n s._n cyprian_n a_o 240_o say_v 9_o say_v lib._n 4._o epist_n 9_o the_o suffering_n &_o day_n of_o martyr_n we_o celebrate_v with_o a_o yearly_a remembrance_n s_o ambrose_n say_v sine_z say_v serm._n 6_o in_o sine_z whosoever_o honour_v martyr_n honour_v christ_n and_o whosoever_o despise_v the_o saint_n despise_v god_n s._n hierome_n say_v rigatiam_fw-la say_v edist_n ad_fw-la rigatiam_fw-la we_o honour_v the_o servant_n that_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o servant_n may_v redound_v to_o the_o lord_n s._n bernard_n anno_fw-la 1140._o say_v aquaeductu_fw-la serm._n in_o illud_fw-la signun_n magnum_fw-la etc._n etc._n serm._n de_fw-fr aquaeductu_fw-la h_z let_v we_o embrace_v the_o step_n of_o mary_n and_o with_o most_o devout_a supplication_n prostrate_v ourselves_o at_o her_o bless_a foot_n again_o let_v we_o with_o all_o the_o bowel_n of_o our_o heart_n with_o all_o our_o affection_n and_o vove_n or_o desire_v worship_n mary_n because_o such_o be_v his_o will_n who_o will_v have_v we_o altogether_o through_o mary_n the_o adversary_n 211_o adversary_n in_o his_o def_n &c_n &c_n against_o the_o reply_n of_o cart_n pag_n 472_o 473_o also_o d_o covell_n in_o exaâ_n etc._n etc._n pag_n 110_o in_o ââuynder_n to_o brâstow_n pag_n 5_o and_o age_n nâ_n rhem._n teâ_n in_o 2_o pet._n c._n 1._o s_o 3._o fol._n 44._o and_o against_o purgatory_n pag._n 310._o also_o châm_n tamen_fw-la part_n 3._o pag_n 200._o 211_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n m._n whitgist_n affirm_v that_o to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n almost_o all_o the_o bishope_n and_o writer_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v spot_v with_o doctrine_n of_o free_a will_n merit_v invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o such_o like_a k_o m._n fulke_n say_v i_o confess_v that_o ambrose_n austin_n and_o hierom_n hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n to_o be_v lawful_a and_o again_o he_o say_v l_o that_o in_o nazianzen_n basil_n and_o chrysostome_n be_v mention_n of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n that_o theodâret_n speak_v of_o prayer_n unto_o martyr_n that_o leo_n ascribe_v much_o to_o the_o prayer_n of_o peter_n for_o he_o that_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n hold_v that_o the_o saint_n depart_v pray_v for_o us._n again_o he_o affirm_v that_o about_o the_o year_n â70_n invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v bring_v public_o into_o the_o church_n by_o ambrose_n basil_n gregory_n naz_n gregory_n nyss_n theodoret_n hierome_n etc._n etc._n 211._o etc._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la 211._o chemnitius_n allege_v s._n austin_n invocate_a s._n cyprian_n and_o conclude_v say_v these_o austin_n do_v without_o the_o scripture_n yield_v to_o time_n and_o custom_n the_o 49._o the_o cent_z 3._o col_fw-fr 84_o line_n 23._o and_o col_fw-fr 8_o lnie_n 49._o centuristes_n charge_n s._n cyprian_a to_o affirm_v that_o martyr_n and_o dead_a saint_n do_v pray_v for_o the_o lyve_n also_o they_o charge_v origen_n with_o prayer_n for_o himself_o to_o holy_a job_n say_v 4â_n say_v cent._n cap_n 4_o col_fw-fr 33._o lin_v 4â_n bless_a job_n pray_v for_o we_o wretch_n the_o affirm_v also_o that_o there_o be_v manifest_a step_n of_o invocation_n of_o angel_n in_o the_o doctor_n of_o that_o age_n luther_n doctrine_n waldense_n doctrine_n de_fw-fr adoratione_n sacramenti_fw-la ad_fw-la waldense_n i_o can_v say_v he_o account_v you_o for_o heretic_n as_o our_o sophister_n do_v because_o you_o neither_o invocat_fw-la the_o mother_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o other_o saint_n but_o rest_n in_o christ_n the_o only_a and_o alone_a mediator_n although_o one_o may_v make_v intercession_n for_o another_o here_o in_o this_o life_n yet_o for_o the_o intercession_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n depart_v the_o scripture_n speak_v nothing_o again_o invocation_n of_o saint_n say_v he_o be_v also_o one_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o antichristian_a abuse_n missis_fw-la abuse_n in_o attieulis_fw-la ad_fw-la council_n mantuanum_fw-la missis_fw-la whereby_o he_o resist_v the_o chief_a article_n blot_v out_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ._n philipp_n melanchthon_n say_v pontificiae_fw-la say_v in_o antith_a verae_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la and_o pontificiae_fw-la all_o invocation_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v manifest_a idolatry_n such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n nicolaus_n hemnimgius_n say_v mariae_fw-la say_v in_o explicat_fw-la euang._n de_fw-la festo_fw-la annunc_fw-la mariae_fw-la invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v a_o devilish_a worship_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n by_o the_o devil_n johan._n brentius_n say_v wittemberg_fw-mi say_v in_o apolog._n confession_n wittemberg_fw-mi we_o grant_v that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n do_v pray_v for_o the_o live_a on_o earth_n do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v they_o be_v to_o be_v invocate_v no_o such_o matter_n etc._n etc._n who_o command_v you_o to_o invocate_v the_o saint_n as_o the_o friend_n of_o god_n for_o this_o very_a worship_n of_o invocate_a saint_n be_v idololatricall_a because_o god_n only_o be_v to_o be_v invocate_v calvins_n doctrine_n 12._o doctrine_n lib_n 1._o instit_fw-la cap._n 13._o ¶_o 12._o let_v that_o platonical_a philosophy_n say_v he_o of_o seek_v recourse_n unto_o god_n by_o angel_n be_v of_o force_n and_o of_o worship_v they_o for_o this_o end_n whereby_o they_o may_v make_v more_o propitious_a and_o easy_a unto_o we_o which_o superstitious_a and_o curious_a man_n have_v endeavour_v from_o the_o begin_n to_o bring_v unto_o our_o religion_n and_o do_v so_o persevere_v unto_o this_o day_n again_o moreover_o say_v he_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a toy_n that_o sophister_n babble_n christ_n be_v a_o mediator_n of_o redemption_n but_o the_o faithful_a of_o intercession_n again_o 21_o again_o ¶_o 21_o for_o as_o much_o as_o pertain_v to_o saint_n who_o be_v dead_a in_o flesh_n but_o live_v in_o christ_n if_o we_o attribute_v any_o prayer_n unto_o they_o whereby_o they_o may_v pray_v for_o we_o in_o heaven_n let_v we_o not_o dream_v of_o any_o other_o way_n to_o beseech_v god_n by_o they_o than_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o only_a way_n or_o that_o their_o prayer_n be_v accept_v by_o god_n in_o any_o other_o name_n therefore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o scripture_n do_v call_v we_o from_o all_o unto_o christ_n only_o and_o our_o reavenly_a father_n will_v have_v we_o to_o seek_v all_o thing_n in_o he_o it_o be_v to_o much_o blockishness_n nay_o i_o say_v madness_n for_o we_o to_o seek_v access_n by_o they_o and_o be_v lead_v from_o he_o without_o who_o they_o themselves_o have_v no_o admittance_n but_o who_o dare_v deny_v but_o this_o have_v be_v practyse_v many_o age_n and_o to_o this_o day_n be_v in_o use_v whersoever_o the_o papacy_n rangn_v final_o in_o all_o their_o litany_n ibid._n in_o fine_a ibid._n hymn_n and_o prose_n
the_o wilderness_n be_v produce_v he_o saithe_v this_o same_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v whereby_o salvation_n be_v bring_v to_o our_o soul_n yea_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v hold_n christ_n crucify_v in_o such_o manner_n of_o image_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o calvins_n doctrine_n imaginibus_fw-la doctrine_n lib._n 1._o c._n 11._o ¶_o 5_o de_fw-fr imaginibus_fw-la i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o it_o be_v usual_a and_o more_o than_o common_a that_o image_n be_v idiote_n book_n this_o gregory_n say_v but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v far_o otherwise_o so_o that_o if_o he_o have_v be_v teach_v in_o his_o school_n he_o will_v never_o have_v speak_v so_o 7_o so_o ¶_o 7_o where_o for_o if_o papist_n have_v any_o shame_n let_v they_o never_o hereafter_o use_v any_o more_o this_o refuge_n image_n be_v idiote_n book_n and_o by_o and_o by_o he_o say_v but_o these_o picture_n and_o statue_n which_o they_o dedicate_v to_o saint_n what_o be_v they_o but_o the_o example_n of_o most_o filthy_a luxury_n and_o obscurity_n so_o that_o if_o any_o man_n will_v fashion_v himself_o to_o these_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o a_o bastinado_n yea_o stew_n afford_v whore_n more_o shamefast_a and_o modest_a than_o temple_n or_o church_n do_v those_o which_o they_o call_v the_o image_n of_o virgin_n they_o fain_o also_o a_o habit_n to_o martyr_n no_o less_o undecent_a let_v they_o frame_v therefore_o their_o idol_n at_o least_o with_o a_o little_a shame_n that_o they_o may_v lie_v with_o a_o little_a more_o modesty_n then_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v book_n of_o some_o sanctity_n but_o we_o will_v also_o answer_v this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o teach_v the_o faithful_a people_n in_o holy_a writ_n and_o a_o little_a beneath_o to_o what_o end_n therefore_o be_v there_o so_o many_o wooden_a stone_n silver_n and_o gold_n cross_v erect_v in_o church_n every_o where_o 9_o where_o ibid._n ¶_o 9_o let_v they_o look_v hither_o therefore_o who_o seek_v miserable_a pretence_n to_o defend_v this_o execrable_a idolatry_n wherewith_o true_a religion_n have_v be_v drown_v and_o overwhelm_v this_o many_o age_n image_n say_v they_o be_v not_o take_v for_o god_n 13._o god_n ¶_o 13._o but_o this_o be_v omit_v let_v we_o consider_v here_o by_o the_o way_n whether_o any_o image_n at_o all_o be_v necessary_a in_o christinian_a church_n first_o therefore_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n move_v we_o let_v we_o remember_v for_o the_o first_o 500_o year_n wherein_o religion_n and_o more_o sincere_a doctrine_n do_v as_o yet_o flourish_v and_o spread_v itself_o that_o christian_a church_n common_o be_v free_a from_o image_n but_o how_o impudent_a a_o lie_n this_o be_v may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v before_o a_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n 27._o nic._n eph_n lib_n 16._o ca._n 27._o the_o second_o counsel_n of_o nice_a anno_fw-la 789._o pronounce_v against_o image_n breaker_n and_o spoiler_n of_o monastery_n but_o xenaius_n a_o persian_a first_o of_o all_o teach_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o saint_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v the_o 26._o article_n of_o purgatory_n and_o lymbus_n patrum_fw-la the_o catholic_a doctrine_n beside_o heaven_n and_o hell_n there_o be_v purgatory_n to_o wit_n a_o place_n or_o middle_a state_n after_o this_o life_n wherein_o the_o soul_n of_o many_o faith_n full_a for_o their_o venial_a sin_n or_o negligence_n and_o intermission_n of_o due_a satisfaction_n for_o their_o mortal_a sin_n be_v purge_v more_o full_o by_o suffer_v a_o temporal_a punishment_n before_o they_o pass_v from_o thence_o unto_o paradise_n and_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n scripture_n lymbus_n patrum_fw-la 6.3_o patrum_fw-la osce_fw-la 6.3_o he_o will_v revive_v we_o after_o 2._o day_n in_o the_o 3._o day_n he_o will_v raise_v we_o up_o etc._n etc._n 9.11_o etc._n lath._n 9.11_o thou_o also_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o thy_o testament_n have_v let_v forth_o thy_o prisoner_n out_o of_o the_o lane_n where_o in_o be_v no_o water_n 16.22_o water_n luke_n 16.22_o and_o be_v carry_v by_o the_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n 45._o bosom_n hebr._n 11.40_o ecclesiast_fw-la 24_o 45._o that_o they_o with_o out_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v consummate_a i_o will_v penetrate_v all_o the_o inferior_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o will_v behold_v all_o that_o sleep_n and_o will_v illuminat_fw-la purgatory_n 5.27_o purgatory_n matt._n 5.27_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o thou_o shall_v not_o go_v out_o from_o thence_o till_o thou_o repay_v the_o last_o farthing_n this_o place_n s._n cyprian_n take_v for_o purgatory_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v speak_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 12.2_o epist_n 52._o ad_fw-la anton._n num_fw-la 6._o cap._n 12.2_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v for_o give_v he_o neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v out_o of_o this_o place_n s._n 9_o s._n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la l._n 21._o c._n 1_o and_o s._n greg_n dâal_n l._n 4._o cap._n 9_o austin_n prove_v purgatory_n also_o s._n gregory_n 2.24_o gregory_n act._n 2.24_o loose_v the_o sorrow_n of_o hell_n out_o of_o this_o place_n s._n lit_fw-fr s._n august_n lib._n 12._o c._n 13._o de_fw-fr gent._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr austin_n prove_v purgatory_n for_o say_v he_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o in_o pain_n but_o to_o send_v other_o man_n of_o those_o doulour_n of_o hell_n wherewith_o it_o be_v impossible_a himself_n shall_v be_v touch_v verse_n touch_v 1._o pet._n 3.19_o see_v rhem_n test_n annot._n upon_o this_o cap._n and_o verse_n and_o he_o preach_v to_o they_o also_o that_o be_v in_o prison_n out_o of_o these_o word_n s._n cyprian_n augustine_n and_o the_o father_n prove_v christ_n descension_n into_o hell_n and_o purgatory_n 3.15_o purgatory_n 1._o cor._n 3.15_o but_o himself_n shall_v be_v save_v yet_o foe_n as_o by_o fire_n 5.13_o fire_n apoc._n 5.13_o and_o every_o creature_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o upon_o the_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n and_o that_o be_v therein_o all_o do_v i_o here_o say_v etc._n etc._n benediction_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o power_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o 2.10_o ever_o phil._n 2.10_o that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n bow_n of_o the_o celestial_n terrestrial_n and_o infernal_o 18._o infernal_o 2._o tim._n 1._o v._n 18._o our_o lord_n grant_v he_o to_o find_v mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o that_o day_n see_v also_o a_o very_a forceable_a place_n 1._o john_n 5.16_o father_n s._n cyprian_n anno_fw-la 240._o say_v 2._o say_v lib_n 4_o epist_n 2._o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v purge_v a_o long_a time_n for_o sin_n by_o torment_n and_o clarify_v by_o a_o long_a fire_n and_o a_o other_o thing_n to_o purge_v all_o sin_n by_o passion_n and_o suffering_n origen_n anno_fw-la 230._o say_v exod._n say_v hom_n 6._o in_o exod._n he_o that_o be_v save_v be_v save_v by_o fire_n so_o that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v some_o thing_n mix_v with_o lead_n that_o the_o fire_n do_v purge_v and_o resolve_v that_o all_o may_v become_v pure_a gold_n s._n gregory_n nyssen_n anno_o 380._o say_v mortuit_fw-la say_v orat_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuit_fw-la either_o be_v purge_v in_o this_o present_a life_n by_o prayer_n and_o the_o study_a of_o wisdom_n or_o have_v make_v satisfaction_n after_o his_o death_n by_o the_o furnace_n of_o the_o purge_a fire_n he_o will_v return_v to_o his_o former_a felicity_n et_fw-la infra_fw-la have_v leave_v his_o body_n he_o can_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o god_n divinity_n unless_o the_o purge_a fire_n take_v away_o the_o spot_n mix_v in_o his_o mind_n and_o again_o other_o after_o this_o life_n purge_v their_o spot_n by_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v âlumina_fw-la say_v orat._n in_o âlumina_fw-la they_o shall_v be_v baptise_a in_o their_o other_o fire_n which_o be_v the_o last_o baptism_n neither_o be_v it_o only_o more_o cruel_a yet_o also_o long_o which_o do_v feed_v on_o hard_a matter_n like_o iron_n and_o do_v consume_v the_o lightness_n of_o vice_n s._n basil_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v esaiae_n say_v in_o cap_n 9_o esaiae_n if_o therefore_o we_o have_v make_v know_v our_o sin_n by_o confession_n we_o have_v already_o make_v the_o grow_a grass_n to_o wither_v which_o certain_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n will_v have_v oncsume_v &_o devour_v et_fw-la infra_fw-la he_o do_v not_o theaten_a utter_a ruen_a and_o destruction_n but_o show_v the_o purgation_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n 1â_n apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3_o 1â_n but_o himself_o shall_v be_v save_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n s._n eusebius_n anno_fw-la 520._o say_v epiphania_fw-la say_v euseb_n enis_n leatus_fw-la hom_n de_fw-fr epiphania_fw-la this_o infernal_a pain_n do_v expect_v those_o who_o have_v omit_v and_o not_o observe_v their_o baptism_n shall_v perish_v
heart_n by_o the_o spirit_n without_o either_o character_n or_o ink_n and_o keep_v diligent_o the_o old_a tradition_n s._n clemens_n alexandrinus_n anno_fw-la 190_o 11._o 190_o lib._n de_fw-fr paschate_n ut_fw-la est_fw-la apud_fw-la euseb_n lib_n 6._o cap_n 11._o say_v that_o the_o brother_n do_v wrest_v from_o he_o to_o put_v down_o in_o writing_n and_o to_o deliver_v to_o posterity_n those_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v deliver_v to_o he_o only_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o priest_n successor_n to_o the_o apostle_n origen_n anno_fw-la 230._o say_v rom._n say_v in_o cap._n 6._o epist_n ad_fw-la rom._n the_o church_n receive_v tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n yea_o to_o baptise_v child_n again_o num._n again_o homil_n 5._o in_o lib._n num._n there_o be_v many_o thing_n say_v he_o in_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n or_o observation_n which_o all_o aught_o to_o do_v notwithstanding_o the_o reason_n of_o they_o be_v not_o know_v to_o all_o tertullian_n anno_fw-la 200._o say_v militis_fw-la say_v lib._n de_fw-fr corona_n militis_fw-la also_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o write_v authority_n ought_v to_o be_v crave_v in_o the_o obtain_v of_o tradition_n let_v we_o search_v therefore_o whether_o tradition_n not_o write_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v we_o will_v plain_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v receive_v if_o there_o be_v no_o example_n of_o other_o observation_n which_o we_o challenge_v out_o of_o a_o patronise_a hart_n of_o custom_n with_o the_o instrument_n or_o help_n of_o any_o scripture_n or_o title_n of_o only_a tradition_n afterward_o have_v number_v the_o ceremony_n of_o baptism_n &_o certain_a other_o as_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o yearly_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o such_o like_a he_o add_v say_v if_o thou_o crave_v the_o law_n of_o these_o and_o such_o like_v write_v discipline_n thou_o shall_v find_v none_o tradition_n be_v give_v thou_o for_o a_o author_n custom_n a_o conformer_n and_o say_v a_o observer_n hâeret_fw-la observer_n lib_n pe_z praescrupt_v hâeret_fw-la also_o he_o teach_v that_o heretic_n be_v to_o be_v confute_v not_o by_o scripture_n but_o tradition_n s_o cyprian_n anno_fw-la 240._o say_v 12._o say_v lib_n 1._o epist_n 12._o also_o be_v that_o be_v baptise_a aught_o to_o be_v anoint_v but_o of_o this_o chrism_n or_o oil_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n in_o scripture_n but_o only_o in_o tradition_n again_o 3._o again_o lib._n 2._o epist_n 3._o know_v say_v he_o that_o we_o be_v admonish_v that_o in_o offer_v upon_o the_o chalice_n the_o tradition_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v observe_v neither_o may_v we_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n then_o that_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v first_o do_v for_o we_o that_o the_o chalice_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o his_o remembrance_n be_v offer_v mix_v with_o wine_n s._n eusebius_n anno_fw-la 330._o say_v â_o say_v lib._n 1._o the_o demonst_a rat_n euang_n cap._n â_o moses_n do_v write_v the_o law_n in_o table_n not_o have_v life_n but_o christ_n write_v the_o document_n and_o observation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o mind_n endue_v with_o life_n but_o his_o disciple_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o their_o master_n commend_v their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o ear_n or_o understanding_n of_o many_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v command_v by_o their_o perfect_a master_n unto_o man_n have_v as_o it_o be_v go_v beyond_o their_o custom_n those_o thing_n they_o deliver_v unto_o they_o that_o can_v take_v they_o but_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o think_v be_v agreeable_a unto_o man_n that_o do_v as_o yet_o carry_v soul_n subject_a unto_o affection_n &_o want_a reason_n these_o thing_n i_o say_v comform_a themselves_o to_o the_o imbecility_n &_o weakness_n of_o many_o they_o do_v command_v partly_o by_o writing_n partly_o without_o writing_n to_o be_v keep_v &_o observe_v as_o it_o be_v by_o â_o certain_a unwritten_a law_n s._n athanasius_n anno_fw-la 340._o say_v synodi_fw-la say_v lib._n de_fw-fr decretis_fw-la nil_fw-la synodi_fw-la behold_v we_o have_v demonstrate_v and_o show_v that_o this_o sentence_n have_v be_v deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n unto_o the_o father_n each_o unto_o other_o but_o you_o o_o new_a jew_n and_o son_n of_o gaiphas_n what_o progenitour_n or_o ancestor_n of_o your_o name_n can_v you_o show_v s._n basil_n a_o 380_o say_v 27._o say_v lib._n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la s._n cap._n 27._o the_o article_n which_o be_v keep_v &_o preach_v in_o the_o church_n we_o have_v they_o partly_o out_o of_o unwritten_a doctrine_n and_o have_v receive_v they_o bring_v unto_o we_o in_o a_o mystery_n partly_o out_o of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n both_o which_o have_v the_o same_o force_n unto_o godliness_n and_o no_o man_n that_o have_v but_o any_o mean_a experience_n of_o ecclesiastical_a right_n do_v contradict_v they_o s._n gregory_n naz._n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v julianuru_n say_v orat_fw-la 1._o in_o julianuru_n but_o great_a and_o more_o excellent_a for_o the_o form_n of_o those_o church_n which_o be_v receive_v by_o tradition_n we_o have_v keep_v until_o this_o day_n etc._n etc._n s_o chrysostome_n a_o 380_o say_v 2._o say_v in_o 2._o thess_n 2._o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o deliver_v all_o thing_n by_o their_o epistle_n but_o many_o thing_n with_o out_o write_v but_o as_o well_o these_o as_o they_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o same_o credit_n again_o ãâã_d again_o hom_n 69._o ãâã_d populum_fw-la âââtiâchenum_fw-la &_o hom_n 1._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la âlyâ_n ãâã_d it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a say_v he_o institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o of_o such_o as_o have_v depart_v this_o life_n their_o shall_v be_v memory_n make_v of_o they_o in_o celebrate_v the_o venerable_a mystery_n for_o they_o do_v know_v that_o from_o hence_o their_o do_v come_v much_o profit_n and_o commodity_n unto_o they_o s._n âpiphamus_fw-la anno_fw-la â90_n say_v melchisedecianorun_n say_v ãâã_d 55._o quae_fw-la est_fw-la melchisedecianorun_n there_o be_v limit_n prescribe_v we_o and_o foundation_n for_o the_o edification_n of_o say_v as_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n holy_a scripture_n and_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n whereby_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v strengthen_v on_o every_o side_n so_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v deceive_v by_o fable_n or_o tale_n again_o apostolicorum_fw-la again_o ãâã_d 61._o quae_fw-la est_fw-la apostolicorum_fw-la we_o must_v say_v he_o use_v tradition_n for_o we_o can_v have_v all_o thing_n out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n where_o for_o the_o holy_a apostle_n deliver_v some_o thing_n by_o writing_n and_o other_o some_o by_o tradition_n imperatorem_fw-la tradition_n lib_n contra-constanââum_a imperatorem_fw-la s._n hilary_n anno_fw-la 350_o say_v answer_v a_o arian_n prince_n who_o say_v i_o will_v not_o have_v word_n that_o be_v not_o write_v this_o i_o ask_v say_v s._n hilary_n what_o bishop_n do_v command_v it_o who_o do_v forbid_v the_o manner_n of_o apostolical_a preach_n speak_v first_o if_o you_o think_v it_o well_o say_v i_o will_v not_o have_v new_a medicine_n against_o new_a poison_n montani_fw-la poison_n epist_n ad_fw-la marcellam_fw-la de_fw-la erroribus_fw-la montani_fw-la s_o hierome_n say_v anno_fw-la 380._o we_o at_o a_o fit_a time_n fast_o one_o lend_v according_a to_o apostolical_a tradition_n again_o when_o a_o heretic_n have_v say_v many_o thing_n that_o be_v observe_v in_o church_n by_o tradition_n do_v usurp_v to_o themselves_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o write_a law_n the_o catholic_a answer_v lucisctianos_n answer_v in_o diologo_n con_fw-mi ãâã_d lucisctianos_n indeed_o i_o do_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o church_n but_o what_o manner_n of_o thing_n be_v that_o that_o thou_o do_v transfer_v or_o adjoine_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o heresy_n s._n augustine_n anno_fw-la 400_o say_v 2d_o say_v lib._n 10._o de_fw-la genesi_fw-la cap._n 2d_o the_o custom_n of_o our_o mother_n the_o church_n in_o baptise_v infant_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v or_o in_o any_o sort_n be_v think_v superfluous_a neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v believe_v unless_o it_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n again_o 7._o again_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donatistas_n cap._n 7._o which_o custom_n say_v he_o i_o believe_v proceed_v from_o apostolical_a tradition_n as_o many_o thing_n be_v not_o find_v in_o their_o write_n nor_o in_o latter_a counsel_n yet_o because_o therefore_o keep_v and_o observe_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o be_v think_v and_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v &_o command_v by_o they_o again_o 23._o again_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 23._o the_o apostle_n indeed_o command_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o custom_n which_o be_v oppose_v to_o cyprian_a aught_o to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v his_o beginning_n from_o their_o tradition_n as_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v hold_v and_o for_o this_o be_v right_o believe_v to_o be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n although_o they_o be_v not_o find_v
the_o day_n of_o judgement_n s._n augustine_n anno_fw-la 400._o say_v honorat_fw-la say_v epist_n 180._o ad_fw-la honorat_fw-la when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o the_o extremity_n of_o those_o danger_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n of_o escape_v do_v we_o not_o know_v what_o a_o great_a concourse_n of_o people_n there_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o both_o sex_n and_o every_o age_n some_o crave_v baptism_n other_o reconciliation_n other_o also_o to_o do_v penance_n itself_o all_o crave_v comfort_n and_o the_o consecrate_v and_o give_v of_o the_o sacrament_n again_o explicate_v that_o 146â_n that_o in_o psalm_n 146â_n who_o heal_v the_o contrite_a in_o heart_n and_o bind_v up_o their_o contrition_n he_o say_v what_o be_v those_o bindinge_n temporal_a sacrament_n s._n victor_n anno_fw-la 456._o say_v 20._o say_v lib._n de_fw-fr paeâit_fw-la cap._n 20._o final_o harken_v to_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o understand_v with_o what_o dart_n he_o do_v strike_v the_o sinner_n that_o thou_o moist_a know_v in_o what_o great_a estimation_n he_o have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n extreme_a unction_n s._n innocentius_n 1_o anno_fw-la 402._o speak_v of_o the_o holy_a oil_n of_o the_o sick_a say_v 8._o say_v epist_n 1_o ad_fw-la decenclum_n cap._n 8._o this_o can_v be_v give_v to_o the_o not_o penitent_a because_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o sacrament_n for_o to_o who_o the_o other_o sacrament_n be_v deny_v how_o can_v one_o kind_n be_v think_v to_o be_v grant_v 325._o grant_v can._n 69._o anno_fw-la 325._o the_o council_n of_o nice_a make_v plain_a mention_n of_o the_o oil_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o do_v distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o chrism_n and_o oil_n of_o such_o as_o be_v new_o instruct_v in_o the_o say_v because_o there_o do_v follow_v many_o other_o particular_n afterwards_o the_o council_n cabilonense_n anno_fw-la 580._o speak_v of_o this_o sacrament_n say_v 4â_n say_v can._n 4â_n the_o father_n decree_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o epistle_n of_o s_o james._n 322._o james._n can._n 72._o anno_fw-la 322._o in_o the_o council_n wormatiense_n the_o decree_n of_o s._n innocentius_n the_o first_o be_v again_o renew_v 140._o renew_v witness_n burchard_n lib_n 4_o can_v 75._o anno_fw-la 140._o the_o council_n meldense_n command_v that_o upon_o thursday_n in_o the_o week_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n all_o parish_n priest_n shall_v receive_v their_o viol_n of_o holy_a oil_n of_o the_o bishope_n for_o the_o anoint_v of_o the_o sick_a according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o 742._o also_o gan._n 8._o anno_fw-la 742._o the_o council_n of_o aquisgrane_fw-la in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n lodowicke_n do_v admonish_v we_o that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v not_o neglect_v wherein_o the_o salvation_n of_o health_n of_o the_o sick_a be_v contain_v order_n ordinandorum_fw-la order_n lib_n de_fw-fr eccl._n hierarch_n cap_n 5._o ordinandorum_fw-la dionysius_n areopagita_n anno_fw-la 80._o write_v ceremony_n of_o this_o whole_a sacrament_n and_o do_v also_o sufficient_o show_v that_o it_o confer_v grace_n s._n chrysostome_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v sacerdotio_fw-la say_v lib._n 3_o de_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la priesthood_n be_v use_v here_o on_o earth_n but_o be_v to_o be_v number_v and_o place_v in_o the_o order_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o that_o right_a worthy_o for_o not_o any_o mortal_a man_n not_o a_o angel_n not_o a_o archangel_n not_o any_o create_a power_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o do_v dispose_v such_o a_o order_n s._n ambrose_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v 5._o say_v lib._n de_fw-fr dignitate_fw-la sacerdotalâ_n cap._n 5._o man_n impose_v his_o hand_n god_n give_v grace_n the_o priest_n impose_v his_o simple_a right_a hand_n god_n do_v bless_v with_o his_o almighty_a right_a hand_n s._n augustine_n anno_fw-la 400._o say_v 11._o say_v lib_n 2._o contra_fw-la parmenianum_fw-la cap._n 11._o let_v they_o explicate_v how_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o baptise_a can_v be_v lose_v and_o how_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o ordain_v may_v be_v lose_v for_o if_o both_o be_v sacrament_n which_o no_o man_n doubt_v why_o be_v that_o not_o lose_v and_o this_o lose_v we_o must_v do_v injury_n to_o neither_o sacrament_n s._n leo_n the_o great_a anno_fw-la 440._o say_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o mauritania_n speak_v of_o ordination_n 17._o ordination_n epist_n 17._o who_o dare_v say_v he_o dissemble_v a_o injury_n commit_v against_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n comm_n sacrament_n lib_n 4._o comm_n s_o gregory_n the_o great_a anno_fw-la 590._o say_v upon_o the_o book_n of_o king_n in_o the_o beginning_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n he_o that_o be_v advance_v be_v well_o anoint_a outward_o with_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n matrimony_n s._n chrysostome_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v ephesios_n say_v hom_n 20._o in_o epist_n add_v ephesios_n it_o be_v a_o mystery_n in_o deed_n the_o latins_n call_v it_o a_o sacrament_n and_o a_o great_a mystery_n he_o be_v leave_v or_o forsake_v who_o beget_v he_o who_o nourish_v he_o also_o she_o that_o bring_v he_o forth_o that_o bring_v he_o forth_o with_o misery_n and_o labover_n for_o a_o man_n to_o adhere_v unto_o she_o who_o he_o never_o see_v before_o and_o to_o prefer_v her_o befofe_n all_o other_o true_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n s._n ambrose_n anno_fw-la 380._o say_v ephesios_n say_v comm_n in_o cap_n 5_o add_v ephesios_n it_o signify_v the_o sacrament_n of_o that_o mystery_n in_o the_o unite_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o be_v great_a again_o speak_v of_o he_o that_o desire_v a_o other_o man_n wife_n he_o say_v 7_o say_v lib._n 1_o de_fw-fr abraham_n cap._n 7_o and_o therefore_o because_o he_o sin_v against_o god_n he_o lose_v the_o fellowshipe_n of_o that_o heavenly_a sacrament_n s._n augustine_n anno_fw-la 400._o say_v 10_o say_v lib_n 1_o the_o ãâã_d &_o concupisc_fw-la cap._n 10_o the_o sacrament_n of_o wedloke_n or_o marriage_n be_v commend_v to_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v marry_v wherefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v husband_n love_v your_o wife_n again_o 18_o again_o lib._n de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi coniugali_fw-la cap_n 18_o in_o our_o mariadge_n say_v he_o the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v of_o more_o worth_n than_o the_o frutefullnes_n of_o the_o womb_n again_o 7_o again_o lib._n the_o side_n &_o operibas_fw-la cap._n 7_o in_o the_o city_n of_o god_n in_o his_o holy_a mountain_n that_o be_v in_o his_o church_n not_o only_o the_o band_n of_o wedlock_n but_o also_o the_o sacrament_n be_v commend_v final_o that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o two_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n this_o one_o example_n of_o 3._o of_o in_o psalm_n 10._o concâoâie_v 1._o upon_o these_o word_n which_o caâe_v rest_v the_o high_a parââs_n thereof_o with_o water_n v._o 3._o s._n austin_n to_o omit_v many_o other_o out_o of_o the_o same_o author_n may_v suffice_v say_v look_v upon_o the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n itself_o the_o office_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o baptism_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o other_o holy_a sacrament_n see_v the_o adversary_n consent_n where_o these_o sacrament_n be_v handle_v in_o particular_a here_o follow_v luther_n doctrine_n luther_n say_v 84._o say_v tom_fw-mi 2._o witemberg_fw-mi anno_o 1562_o the_o captiâ_n babyl_n fol._n 84._o but_o thou_o will_v say_v what_o say_v you_o to_o dionysius_n areopagita_n who_o number_v six_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v i_o know_v this_o man_n only_o of_o the_o old_a father_n to_o stand_v for_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n although_o omit_v matrimony_n he_o grant_v six_o only_a babylonica_fw-la only_a in_o initio_fw-la lib._n the_o cap_a babylonica_fw-la luther_n be_v so_o variable_a and_o unconstant_a in_o this_o matter_n that_o one_o while_o he_o affirm_v only_o one_o sacrament_n a_o other_o while_o three_o baptism_n the_o eucharist_n and_o penance_n and_o all_o this_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o book_n textu_fw-la book_n lib._n ad_fw-la porgenses_n de_fw-la instituendis_fw-la ministâls_n and_o lib._n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la privata_fw-la and_o in_o assert_v count_n lovan_a publish_v by_o himself_o the_o last_o year_n of_o his_o life_n and_o also_o assert_v 53_o he_o say_v ut_fw-la in_o textu_fw-la but_o this_o his_o last_o opinion_n he_o repeat_v in_o many_o other_o place_n as_o in_o the_o margin_n insomuch_o that_o he_o say_v we_o willing_o confess_v that_o penance_n with_o the_o power_n or_o virtue_n of_o the_o key_n absolve_a be_v a_o sacrament_n for_o it_o have_v the_o promise_n and_o faith_n or_o grant_v of_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o christ_n l_o this_o latter_a also_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o true_a lutheran_n as_o witness_v the_o apology_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n art_n 13._o and_o all_o the_o lutheran_v catechism_n after_o the_o same_o sort_n waver_v sacramentorum_fw-la waver_v in_o locis_fw-la come_v editis_fw-la 1521._o and_o 22._o cap._n de_fw-fr signis_fw-la nunc_fw-la
resurrection_n of_o life_n everlasting_a these_o s_n athanasius_n peter_n martyr_n do_v so_o triumph_v upon_o this_o place_n that_o he_o say_v 100l_n lib._n contra_fw-la gardiner_n object_n 100l_n he_o do_v think_v there_o be_v scare_v any_o strong_a argument_n than_o this_o or_o more_o invincible_a among_o those_o that_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o father_n i_o answer_v the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n consist_v in_o there_o point_n so_o first_o in_o that_o he_o say_v the_o eat_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v take_v carnal_o because_o his_o flesh_n will_v not_o suffice_v so_o many_o as_o shall_v eat_v of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v take_v carnal_o but_o this_o do_v not_o make_v against_o our_o sentence_n but_o the_o capharnaite_n who_o think_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v divide_v into_o little_a part_n and_o so_o distribute_v to_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v eat_v of_o it_o and_o in_o this_o manner_n indeed_o it_o will_v not_o suffice_v so_o many_o without_o some_o miracle_n but_o we_o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o to_o be_v take_v that_o it_o be_v all_o receive_v indivisible_o of_o every_o one_o moreover_o in_o that_o s._n athanasius_n say_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v spiritual_a food_n and_o to_o be_v distribute_v spiritual_o it_o do_v not_o any_o way_n offend_v our_o opinion_n for_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v most_o true_o call_v spiritual_a food_n because_o it_o be_v give_v for_o the_o meât_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o of_o the_o body_n and_o be_v distribute_v spiritual_o not_o corporal_o because_o it_o be_v not_o divide_v into_o part_n but_o be_v give_v all_o whole_a together_o as_o we_o have_v say_v indivisible_o martino_n sermo_n de_fw-fr s._n martino_n where_o upon_o s._n bernard_n say_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v and_o eat_v spiritual_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v that_o the_o true_a substance_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n bibliotheca_fw-la in_o act_v eiusdem_fw-la concilâââ_n uâticâna_fw-la bibliotheca_fw-la but_o to_o make_v â_o athanasius_n yet_o more_o plain_o receive_v this_o one_o sentence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a whereof_o himself_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a the_o word_n be_v these_o also_o here_o upon_o the_o divine_a table_n let_v we_o not_o simple_o attend_v or_o respect_v the_o bread_n and_o cup_n set_v before_o we_o but_o lift_v up_o our_o mind_n and_o understanding_n by_o say_v let_v we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v place_v upon_o that_o sacred_a table_n that_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v offer_v up_o unbloody_o by_o the_o priest_n and_o true_o take_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n let_v we_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v the_o token_n of_o our_o resurrection_n for_o by_o this_o neither_o do_v we_o receive_v much_o but_o little_a that_o we_o may_v know_v it_o be_v take_v not_o unto_o fullnes_n but_o sanctification_n this_o testimony_n also_o our_o adversary_n for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v acknowledge_v which_o together_o which_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v i_o think_v sufficient_a to_o explicate_v a_o real_a receive_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o his_o own_o word_n but_o for_o your_o better_a satisfaction_n and_o more_o full_a refutation_n of_o your_o error_n especial_o in_o this_o point_n as_o also_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o all_o age_n as_o well_o before_o our_o saviour_n come_v as_o since_o and_o all_o the_o learned_a of_o god_n church_n both_o jew_n and_o christian_n have_v ever_o write_v against_o you_o herein_o i_o have_v collect_v the_o say_n of_o some_o chief_a jew_n before_o our_o saviour_n time_n who_o then_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o interpreter_n of_o his_o word_n a_o brief_a demonstration_n from_o the_o ancient_a jew_n for_o the_o real_a presence_n rabbi_n cahana_n say_v 11._o aâ_n cap._n 4_o gâââs_n v._o 11._o that_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o shall_v be_v offer_v of_o wine_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o messias_n but_o ãâã_d into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n the_o sacrifice_n which_o shall_v be_v of_o bread_n notwithstanding_o that_o it_o be_v white_a be_v milk_n it_o shall_v be_v convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o messias_n rabbi_n judas_n say_v exod._n in_o 25._o exod._n the_o bread_n shall_v be_v change_v when_o it_o shall_v be_v sacrifice_v from_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o messias_n which_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o he_o himself_o shall_v be_v the_o sacrifice_n rabbi_n simeon_n the_o son_n of_o johas_n say_v secretorâm_fw-la lib_n qui_fw-la in_o ãâã_d revelatio_fw-la secretorâm_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n which_o priest_n shall_v make_v after_o the_o messias_n have_v come_v etc._n etc._n they_o shall_v make_v it_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o shall_v be_v so_o celebrate_v upon_o every_o altar_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o messias_n rabbi_n barachias_n say_v that_o food_n ecclesiast_fw-la in_o ecclesiast_fw-la at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messias_n shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n like_o to_o a_o little_a cake_n rabbi_n moses_n hadarsan_n say_v â_o in_o psalmum_fw-la 1_o â_o taste_v you_o and_o behold_v you_o for_o god_n be_v good_a and_o the_o very_a bread_n which_o he_o give_v to_o all_o be_v his_o flesh_n and_o whilst_o the_o bread_n be_v taste_v it_o be_v turn_v into_o his_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n see_v these_o aforesaid_a testimony_n and_o sundry_a other_o like_o allege_a from_o the_o rabbynes_n by_o perrus_n galatinus_n 80_o de_fw-fr arâ_n ãâ¦ã_o 10_o cap_fw-es â_o 6_o 7_o ãâ¦ã_o sect_n 3_o ãâã_d uâ_n sion_fw-la 2._o fol._n 80_o concern_v all_o other_o circumstance_n about_o this_o point_n i_o refer_v you_o to_o the_o protestant_n apology_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o 33._o article_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n christian_n have_v in_o the_o church_n one_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n wherein_o the_o unspotted_a lamb_n of_o god_n christ_n be_v offer_v a_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n whereof_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n and_o god_n himself_o speak_v in_o malacthie_a and_o of_o which_o the_o lamb_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o all_o other_o sacrifice_n be_v type_n and_o figure_n scripture_n 33.18_o scripture_n jeremie_n ca._n 33.18_o and_o of_o the_o prioste_n and_o levite_n shall_v not_o fail_v from_o before_o my_o face_n a_o man_n to_o offer_v holocauste_n and_o to_o burn_v sacrifice_n and_o to_o kill_v victimes_o all_o day_n hence_o the_o father_n prove_v that_o there_o must_v be_v always_o sacrifice_v in_o god_n church_n 11_o church_n daniel_n 12._o v._n 11_o when_o the_o continual_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n who_o as_o most_o father_n expound_v it_o shall_v reign_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a 13.3_o half_a act._n 13.3_o and_o as_o they_o be_v minister_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o fast_v the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v 10.16_o say_v 1._o cor._n 10.16_o the_o chalice_n of_o benediction_n which_o we_o do_v bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n 1â_n lord_n luke_n 22_o 1â_n and_o take_v bread_n he_o give_v thanks_n and_o break_v &_o give_v unto_o they_o saying_n etc._n etc._n 23.10_o etc._n hebr._n 23.10_o we_o have_v a_o altar_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o eat_v that_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n father_n s._n james_n the_o apostle_n in_o his_o liturgy_n say_v we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o for_o the_o ignorances_n of_o the_o people_n s._n andrew_n apostle_n in_o the_o book_n of_o his_o passion_n write_v by_o his_o disciple_n say_v unto_o the_o tyrant_n i_o sacrifice_v daily_o the_o immaculate_a lamb_n to_o almighty_a god_n et_fw-la infra_fw-la who_o when_o he_o be_v indeed_o sacrifice_v and_o his_o flesh_n true_o eat_v by_o the_o people_n remain_v whole_a and_o alive_a ergo_fw-la alive_a epist_n 3._o as_o it_o be_v recite_v de_fw-la consec_fw-la do_v 1._o can_v hic_fw-la ergo_fw-la s._n clement_n write_v unto_o s._n james_n brother_n to_o our_o lord_n say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o celebrate_v mass_n in_o other_o place_n but_o in_o these_o wherein_o the_o proper_a bishop_n shall_v appoint_v these_o thing_n the_o apostle_n receive_v from_o our_o lord_n and_o deliver_v unto_o you_o s._n hippolytus_n martyr_n anno_fw-la 240._o bring_v in_o christ_n speak_v thus_o antichristo_fw-la thus_o in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la come_v you_o bishop_n and_o priest_n
of_o the_o faithful_a hence_o therefore_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o a_o manner_n of_o sacrifice_n this_o be_v for_o us._n which_o at_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o priest_n do_v open_v the_o heaven_n for_o our_o absolution_n in_o that_o mystery_n of_o christ_n the_o company_n of_o angel_n be_v present_a the_o low_a thing_n be_v join_v in_o fellowship_n with_o the_o high_a earthly_a thing_n with_o heavenly_a and_o of_o visible_a and_o invisible_a one_o thing_n be_v make_v the_o adversary_n 44._o adversary_n pag._n 65._o m._n beacon_n in_o his_o work_n set_v forth_o 5560._o 3._o part_n in_o his_o treatise_n entitle_v the_o relic_n of_o rome_n fol._n 44._o m._n beacon_n who_o the_o minister_n of_o lincolnshire_n in_o their_o abridgement_n etc._n etc._n affirm_v to_o be_v a_o devyne_a of_o chief_a note_n in_o their_o church_n say_v serious_o the_o mass_n be_v beget_v conceive_v and_o bear_v anon_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o all_o be_v true_a that_o historiographer_n write_v 31._o write_v hosp_n in_o historia_fw-la sacramentaria_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap_n 6._o pap_n 20._o sebast_n epist_n de_fw-fr abrogandis_fw-la inuniversum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la statutis_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la m._n ascham_n apolog_fw-la pro_fw-la coena_fw-la domi._n pag._n 31._o hospinianus_n say_v even_o in_o that_o first_o age_n they_o yet_o live_a the_o devil_n do_v attempt_v to_o lay_v his_o snare_n rather_o against_o this_o sacrament_n than_o baptism_n and_o by_o little_a and_o little_o do_v seduce_v man_n from_o that_o first_o form_n m_o sebastianus_n flaucus_n say_v most_o plain_o that_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n all_o thing_n be_v turn_v upside_o down_o &c._n &c._n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v change_v into_o a_o sacrifice_n m._n ascham_n a_o prime_a protestant_n do_v acknowledge_v without_o more_o ado_n that_o no_o begin_v thereof_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n can_v be_v show_v say_v at_o what_o time_n and_o by_o who_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v thrust_v from_o its_o possession_n by_o the_o mass_n can_v certain_o be_v know_v 924_o know_v in_o omnes_fw-la pauli_n epistolas_fw-la in_o hebr._fw-la c_o 7._o v._o 9_o pag._n 924_o caluin_n say_v that_o athanasius_n ambrose_n austin_n arnobius_n etc._n etc._n err_v herein_o so_o far_o that_o they_o forge_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n without_o our_o saviour_n command_n and_o so_o adulterate_v or_o corrupt_v the_o supper_n with_o add_v of_o sacrifice_n again_o he_o say_v 389._o say_v lib._n the_o verâ_n ecclesiae_fw-la reformationâ_n pag_n 389._o the_o ancient_a father_n can_v be_v excuse_v for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o have_v decline_v from_o the_o pure_a and_o true_a institution_n of_o christ_n for_o whereas_o the_o supper_n ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v unto_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v communicate_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o therewith_o content_a do_v also_o add_v oblation_n this_o augmentation_n i_o say_v be_v vicious_a and_o naught_o these_o caluin_n 14._o caluin_n cent._n 1â_n col_fw-fr 83._o l._n 14._o the_o century-writer_n reprove_v s._n cyprian_a say_v the_o priest_n say_v cyprian_n do_v supply_v the_o place_n of_o christ_n &_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o in_o their_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o that_o century_n at_o the_o letter_n s._n they_o say_v ibidem_fw-la say_v ibidem_fw-la that_o cyprian_n do_v superstitious_o affirm_v the_o priest_n to_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n 63._o supper_n cent._n 2._o c._n 4_o col._n 63._o again_o although_o say_v they_o the_o doctores_fw-la of_o this_o age_n have_v nothing_o of_o offer_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o eucharist_n yet_o there_o do_v occur_v in_o they_o certain_a say_n very_o ambiguous_a and_o incommodious_a as_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o ignatius_n to_o the_o smyrnenses_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a say_v ignatius_n without_o a_o bishope_n either_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n or_o celebrate_v mass_n 23._o mass_n ibid_fw-la l._n 20._o ibid_fw-la col_fw-fr 113_o line_n 23._o also_o they_o say_v the_o like_a of_o s._n irenaeus_n t_o s_o irenaeus_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o they_o doubt_v not_o to_o charge_v he_o with_o negligence_n and_o of_o be_v improper_a in_o his_o speech_n and_o often_o call_v the_o eucharist_n a_o oblation_n to_o conclude_v these_o foresay_a say_n of_o ignatius_n &_o irenaeus_n who_o be_v so_o plain_a to_o the_o centuriste_n that_o although_o they_o be_v likewise_o extant_a in_o all_o copy_n and_o library_n yet_o they_o blush_v not_o to_o say_v concern_v that_o of_o ignatius_n 9_o ignatius_n ibiden_v line_n 9_o that_o they_o do_v partly_o suspect_v it_o as_o insert_v concern_v that_o of_o irenaeus_n they_o say_v 22_o say_v col_fw-fr 6â_n line_n 22_o if_o notwithstang_v the_o place_n be_v void_a of_o fraud_n &_o error_n which_o reprehension_n be_v so_o evident_a and_o not_o to_o be_v excuse_v that_o ââ_o that_o sutcliffe_n in_o his_o subversion_n of_o the_o three_o conversion_n pag._n ââ_o m._n sutcliffe_n do_v acknowledge_v it_o luther_n doctrine_n 1._o doctrine_n lib._n the_o cap_a babylonieâ_n cap._n 1._o luther_n brief_o answer_v to_o all_o this_o say_v if_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v say_v it_o be_v more_o save_v to_o deny_v all_o then_o to_o grant_v the_o mass_n to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n again_o i_o profess_v say_v he_o especial_o against_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v cry_v out_o that_o i_o teach_v against_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o stature_n of_o the_o father_n i_o profess_v i_o say_v that_o i_o will_v hear_v none_o of_o this_o and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v i_o care_v not_o what_o the_o father_n be_v say_v of_o the_o mass_n again_o in_o his_o book_n against_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o he_o say_v last_o of_o all_o the_o king_n bring_v in_o the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n for_o amass_a sacrifice_n or_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o laugh_v at_o my_o foolishness_n that_o i_o only_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v wise_a before_o all_o other_o but_o i_o say_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o produce_v but_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n et_fw-la infra_fw-la i_o care_v not_o if_o therbe_n a_o thousand_o augustine_n and_o a_o thousand_o cyprian_n against_o i_o again_o here_o say_v he_o i_o nothing_o regard_v it_o private_a in_o lib._n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la private_a if_o the_o papist_n cry_v out_o the_o church_n the_o church_n the_o father_n father_n because_o as_o i_o say_v we_o respect_v not_o man_n say_n or_o deed_n in_o so_o weighty_a matter_n for_o we_o know_v that_o the_o prophet_n themselves_o have_v fall_v yea_o and_o the_o apostle_n also_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n we_o judge_v the_o church_n apostle_n yea_o and_o angel_n themselves_o calvins_n doctrine_n caluin_n say_v 1._o say_v lib._n 4_o inââââ_n cap_n 1â_n ¶_o 1._o let_v all_o reader_n understand_v that_o here_o i_o be_o to_o deal_v with_o that_o opinion_n wherein_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n &_o his_o prophet_n have_v instruct_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o work_n whereby_o the_o priest_n that_o offer_v christ_n and_o other_o that_o do_v participate_v in_o that_o oblation_n do_v obtain_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o satisfactory_a oblation_n whereby_o to_o reconcile_v themselves_o unto_o god_n again_o 3._o again_o ¶_o 3._o certain_o this_o be_v most_o certain_a the_o cross_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v frustrate_a assoon_o as_o the_o altar_n shall_v be_v erect_v again_o 11._o again_o ¶_o 11._o but_o because_o i_o see_v that_o those_o ancient_a father_n also_o have_v wrest_v this_o otherwise_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n although_o their_o supper_n carry_v a_o show_n of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o ancient_a or_o at_o least_o renew_a oblation_n i_o think_v they_o can_v be_v excuse_v but_o they_o have_v some_o thing_n err_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o do_v for_o they_o have_v rather_o imitate_v the_o jewish_a manner_n of_o sacrifice_v then_o that_o which_o either_o christ_n ordain_v or_o the_o gospel_n do_v permit_v again_o 1â_n again_o ¶_o 1â_n what_o remain_v say_v he_o but_o that_o the_o blind_a may_v see_v the_o deaf_a hear_v and_o child_n understand_v that_o this_o abomination_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v drink_v in_o a_o golden_a cup_n have_v so_o make_v drink_v all_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o people_n even_o from_o the_o high_a unto_o the_o low_a and_o strike_v they_o with_o such_o a_o dead_a sheep_n and_o giddiness_n in_o the_o head_n that_o they_o be_v become_v more_o stupid_a than_o brute_n beast_n and_o do_v place_n the_o very_a anchor_n hold_v and_o sum_n of_o their_o salvation_n in_o this_o only_a deadly_a poison_n a_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n ââââianum_fw-la lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la ââââianum_fw-la s._n austin_n do_v report_n among_o the_o error_n and_o fury_n
of_o the_o donatist_n that_o whersoever_o they_o come_v they_o be_v accustom_v to_o overthrow_v and_o break_v down_o altar_n sell_v the_o holy_a chalice_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o donatist_n who_o also_o in_o time_n past_a do_v boast_v that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a reformer_n of_o god_n church_n and_o proclaim_v themselves_o every_o where_o to_o be_v the_o true_a ancient_a and_o orthodoxal_a catholic_n do_v notwithstanding_o also_o take_v away_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o 34._o article_n communion_n under_o both_o kind_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n it_o suffice_v the_o laiety_n or_o common_a people_n to_o communicate_v under_o one_o form_n to_o wit_n of_o bread_n for_o by_o this_o they_o fullfil_v the_o precept_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o eat_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o also_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v practyse_v and_o that_o not_o without_o good_a reason_n scripture_n 51.5â_n scripture_n john_n 6_o 51.5â_n if_o any_o man_n eat_v of_o this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v forever_o and_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v forever_o 242._o forever_o act._n 242._o and_o they_o be_v persevere_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o break_n of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n 207_o prayer_n act._n 207_o and_o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o sabbath_n when_o we_o be_v assemble_v to_o break_v bread_n jesus_n go_v to_o emaus_n with_o his_o two_o disciple_n 30_o disciple_n luke_n 24_o 30_o and_o he_o enter_v with_o they_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v whilst_o he_o sit_v with_o they_o he_o take_v bread_n and_o bless_a and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o they_o and_o their_o eye_n be_v openned_a and_o they_o know_v he_o s._n austin_n and_o theophylactus_n anno_fw-la 400._o do_v explicate_v this_o place_n to_o be_v of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o here_o follow_v be_v manifest_a father_n s._n austin_n say_v place_n say_v lib._n de_fw-fr consensu_fw-la euang._n cap._n 25_o upon_o thâse_a word_n their_o eye_n be_v openned_a and_o they_o know_v he_o and_o the_o same_o also_o sa_o the_o s._n chrysostome_n hom_n 17._o oper_n imper_v &c_n &c_n alij_fw-la upon_o the_o same_o place_n when_o he_o give_v the_o bless_a bread_n unto_o they_o their_o eye_n be_v openned_a and_o they_o know_v he_o et_fw-la infra_fw-la we_o undoubted_o believe_v this_o impediment_n to_o be_v cast_v upon_o their_o eye_n by_o satan_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v not_o know_v jesus_n but_o notwithstanding_o christ_n permit_v it_o even_o to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o bread_n that_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o body_n be_v receive_v the_o impediment_n of_o the_o enemy_n may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v remove_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v know_v theophylactus_n say_v there_o be_v another_o thing_n report_v to_o wit_n that_o their_o eye_n who_o receive_v the_o bless_a bread_n be_v openned_a and_o they_o know_v he_o for_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n have_v great_a and_o incredible_a force_n and_o virtue_n receive_v also_o this_o history_n which_o may_v prove_v the_o receive_n under_o one_o kind_n to_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o begin_v thus_o 7._o thus_o sozomenus_n lib_n 8_o cap_n 5._o &_o nicephorus_n lib._n 1â_n cap._n 7._o a_o certain_a man_n of_o macedony_n be_v sick_a have_v a_o wife_n infect_v with_o the_o same_o disease_n this_o man_n when_o on_o a_o certain_a time_n he_o chance_v upon_o that_o excellent_a man_n s._n chrysostome_n dispute_v what_o we_o ought_v to_o think_v of_o god_n forthwith_o have_v change_v his_o former_a opinion_n he_o praise_v his_o speech_n and_o be_v earnest_a enforce_v his_o wife_n that_o she_o shall_v likewise_o change_v her_o opinion_n but_o when_o she_o through_o the_o custom_n and_o daily_a conference_n with_o her_o fellow_n tatler_n do_v not_o accept_v his_o admonition_n nor_o her_o husband_n avayle_n any_o thing_n by_o all_o his_o persuasion_n at_o length_n in_o plain_a term_n he_o tell_v she_o that_o unless_o she_o will_v hold_v the_o common_a and_o same_o opinion_n of_o god_n with_o he_o she_o shall_v remain_v with_o he_o no_o long_o the_o woman_n afterward_o by_o simulation_n grant_v his_o request_n but_o reveal_v to_o one_o of_o her_o maid_n which_o she_o think_v to_o be_v very_o faithful_a what_o she_o intend_v that_o she_o may_v deceive_v her_o husband_n wherefore_o upon_o a_o time_n approach_v she_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o manner_n be_v &_o retain_v it_o as_o if_o she_o head_v be_v earnest_a in_o prayer_n bow_v herself_o she_o secret_o convey_v it_o away_o and_o hide_v the_o holy_a mystery_n or_o sacrament_n and_o the_o maid_n that_o stand_v by_o give_v she_o a_o piece_n of_o common_a bread_n for_o it_o bring_v from_o their_o house_n which_o she_o put_v to_o her_o mouth_n &_o endeavour_v to_o break_v it_o with_o her_o tooth_n perceive_v it_o to_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o hard_a nature_n of_o a_o stone_n wherefore_o strike_v with_o fear_n lest_o god_n will_v revenge_n himself_o grievous_o upon_o she_o for_o this_o miracle_n which_o happenned_a thus_o unlooked_v for_o with_o all_o speed_n she_o hasten_v to_o that_o reverend_a and_o learned_a father_n and_o open_v the_o matter_n unto_o he_o show_v he_o the_o stone_n which_o do_v as_o yet_o give_v certain_a &_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o the_o bite_a which_o stone_n have_v now_o lose_v his_o former_a substance_n and_o get_v a_o other_o new_a and_o strange_a colour_n but_o she_o afterward_o have_v obtain_v pardon_n for_o that_o fault_n continue_v and_o so_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o her_o husband_n that_o stone_n be_v reserve_v a_o long_a time_n among_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o witness_n of_o this_o miracle_n to_o all_o spectator_n these_o nicephorus_n last_o of_o all_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n anno_fw-la 1260._o write_v thus_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o many_o church_n to_o give_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o people_n but_o not_o the_o wine_n again_o because_o the_o multitude_n of_o christian_a people_n increase_v wherein_o be_v comprehend_v both_o old_a and_o young_a man_n and_o child_n whereof_o some_o be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a discretion_n as_o to_o have_v due_a respect_n and_o care_n concern_v the_o use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n as_o they_o ought_v therefore_o it_o be_v provident_o observe_v in_o some_o church_n that_o the_o blood_n be_v not_o give_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o people_n but_o only_o of_o the_o priest_n again_o the_o body_n may_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o people_n without_o the_o blood_n neither_o do_v any_o detrement_n thence_o follow_v because_o whole_a christ_n be_v contain_v under_o both_o form_n these_o s._n thomas_n moreover_o contr_n tertul._n lib._n 3._o ad_fw-la ux_fw-la clemens_n alexabdrinus_n lib_n 1_o storm_n origenes_n hom_n 13._o in_o levit_fw-la cyprian_a serm._n 5_o de_fw-fr lap_n basil_n ad_fw-la case_n pat_o hieron_n approli_n adu_fw-la lou_z &_o epist_n ad_fw-la theo._n contr_n if_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n as_o these_o father_n in_o the_o margin_n witness_n they_o do_v carry_v the_o sacred_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o with_o they_o unto_o their_o house_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n only_o and_o not_o of_o wine_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o church_n never_o think_v but_o that_o the_o whole_a sacrament_n may_v be_v receive_v under_o one_o form_n without_o any_o offence_n or_o violation_n of_o the_o divine_a precept_n which_o also_o luther_n melanchthon_n and_o bucer_n do_v acknowledge_v in_o their_o several_a write_n say_v that_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o or_o both_o form_n be_v a_o thing_n indifferent_a â74_n joan_n hierosol_n euseb_n caesarien_n lib_n 6._o hist_o eccl_n cap._n 22._o august_n serm._n 152._o add_v temp_n ambros_n de_fw-fr obi_fw-la sac._n bede_n lib._n 4._o hist_o aug._n cap._n 24_o luth._o lib._n ad_fw-la boh._n l._n decl_n euch_fw-ge li._n the_o form_n mâssae_fw-la melanch_n in_o recognitis_fw-la hypot_n bucerââ_n colloq_fw-la râtispen_n see_v fricius_n in_o modcenius_n lib_n 2._o de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ca_fw-mi 2_o brentius_n in_o polog_n con_fw-la wirtem_fw-la cap_fw-es de_fw-es concilijs_fw-la pag._n 900._o de_fw-la formula_fw-la missae_fw-la &_o tom_n germ_v fol._n â74_n the_o adversary_n fricius_n a_o chief_a protestant_n in_o polonia_n say_v that_o christ_n in_o the_o last_o supper_n do_v join_v drink_n with_o the_o meat_n therefore_o say_v he_o if_o the_o church_n separate_v these_o she_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v hear_v let_v it_o be_v or_o admit_v that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v separate_v these_o and_o that_o s._n james_n which_o certain_o many_o affirm_v have_v give_v but_o one_o only_a form_n to_o they_o of_o
that_o they_o seem_v from_o hence_o to_o scrape_v testimony_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o do_v not_o suffice_v to_o confess_v sin_n to_o god_n only_o or_o lay_v man_n but_o that_o the_o priest_n must_v know_v of_o it_o their_o diligence_n be_v shameful_a and_o wicked_a for_o if_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v at_o nny_a time_n persuade_v sinner_n to_o disburden_v themselves_o unto_o their_o pastor_n it_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o any_o recite_v or_o such_o like_a matter_n where_o of_o then_o as_o he_o do_v not_o know_v so_o he_o do_v not_o explicate_v yet_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v although_o they_o teach_v a_o gross_a error_n in_o say_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v declare_v by_o word_n they_o trust_v in_o a_o ceremony_n in_o stead_n of_o doctrine_n a_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n this_o be_v the_o heresy_n and_o chief_a error_n of_o the_o novation_n 33._o witness_n theodoretut_o lib._n de_fw-la haeret_fw-la fab_n and_o s._n cornelius_n papa_n apub_fw-la euseb_n l_o 6._o hist_o cap._n 33._o that_o the_o church_n and_o priest_n of_o christ_n have_v no_o power_n to_o absolve_v sinner_n and_o reconcile_v they_o again_o unto_o god_n the_o 36._o article_n of_o satisfaction_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n a_o man_n justify_v may_v true_o satisfy_v god_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o his_o temporal_a pain_n wherefore_o there_o may_v just_o be_v enjoin_v satisfactory_a work_n as_o fastinge_v abstinence_n alm_n deed_n and_o discipline_n also_o chastisement_n of_o the_o body_n for_o a_o pain_n and_o punishment_n to_o such_o as_o fall_v and_o be_v penitent_a and_o such_o man_n also_o may_v pious_o and_o with_o great_a profit_n undertake_v the_o same_o and_o fulfil_v it_o scripture_n 12._o scripture_n nom._n 2d_o v._o 12._o because_o you_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o i_o to_o sanctify_v i_o before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n you_o shall_v not_o bring_v in_o these_o people_n into_o the_o land_n which_o i_o will_v give_v they_o 14._o they_o 2_o king_n cap._n 12_o 14._o because_o thou_o have_v make_v the_o emime_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o blaspheme_v for_o this_o thing_n the_o son_n that_o be_v bear_v to_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n 27.28.29_o death_n 3._o king_n cap._n 21._o v._n 27.28.29_o when_o achab_n have_v hear_v these_o word_n he_o rend_v his_o garment_n and_o cover_v his_o flesh_n with_o hearcloth_n and_o fast_v and_o sleep_v in_o sackcloth_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v to_o elias_n the_o thisbite_n say_v haste_v thou_o not_o see_v achab_n humble_v before_o i_o therefore_o because_o he_o have_v humble_v himself_o for_o my_o sake_n i_o will_v not_o bring_v in_o the_o evil_a in_o his_o day_n 24._o day_n 2._o king_n 24_o 22_o etc._n etc._n daniel_n 4_o 24._o choice_n be_v give_v thou_o of_o three_o thing_n etc._n etc._n either_o famine_n three_o month_n war_n or_o three_o day_n pestilence_n for_o a_o penance_n 3.33_o penance_n tobias_n 12.8_o 9_o and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 3.33_o prayer_n be_v good_a with_o fast_v and_o alm_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v it_o which_o purge_v sin_n and_o make_v to_o find_v mercy_n and_o life_n everlasting_a 2.12_o everlasting_a joel_n 2.12_o turn_v to_o i_o with_o all_o your_o hart_n in_o fast_v and_o in_o weep_v and_o in_o mourning_n 6.7_o mourning_n psal_n 6.7_o i_o have_v labour_v in_o mourning_n i_o will_v wash_v my_o bed_n every_o night_n i_o will_v water_v my_o bed_n with_o my_o tear_n 34.13.1_o tear_n ps_n 34.13.1_o but_o when_o they_o be_v troublesome_a to_o i_o i_o do_v put_v on_o cloth_n of_o hear_v 24.18_o hear_v ps_n 24.18_o see_v my_o humiliation_n and_o my_o labour_n and_o forgive_v all_o my_o sin_n 3.2_o sin_n matt._n 3.2_o do_v penance_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n 11.21_o hand_n cap._n 11.21_o they_o have_v do_v penance_n in_o hearcloth_n and_o ash_n long_v a_o go_v 3.3_o go_v luck_n 3.3_o preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o penance_n unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n 13.3.5_o sin_n cap._n 13.3.5_o unless_o you_o have_v penance_n you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v 22._o perish_v act_n 8_o 22._o do_v penance_n therefore_o for_o this_o thy_o wickedness_n 2.38_o wickedness_n cap._n 2.38_o but_o peter_n say_v unto_o they_o do_v you_o penance_n and_o let_v every_o one_o of_o you_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o your_o sin_n 6._o sin_n 1_o cor._n 5_o 5._o see_v also_o daniel_n 4._o five_o 24._o and_o proverb_n 26_o 6._o to_o deliver_v such_o a_o one_o to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v father_n 1._o concilium_fw-la vacense_n anno_o 442._o bring_v in_o s._n peter_n speak_v thus_o if_o peradventure_o either_o envy_n or_o infidelity_n or_o any_o of_o those_o mischief_n which_o you_o have_v speak_v of_o before_o shall_v secret_o creep_v into_o any_o man_n hart_n let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v those_o thing_n unto_o he_o that_o have_v the_o care_n of_o the_o government_n of_o his_o soul_n that_o he_o may_v be_v cure_v by_o he_o through_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o wholesome_a council_n whereby_o through_o sound_a faith_n and_o good_a work_n he_o may_v avoid_v the_o pain_n of_o eternal_a sire_n and_o obteyn_v the_o reward_n of_o life_n everlasting_a s._n dionysius_n areopagita_n anno_fw-la 80._o 6._o epist_n 6._o vehement_o rebuke_v demophilus_n the_o monk_n because_o with_o his_o foot_n he_o thrust_v away_o a_o sinner_n that_o have_v submit_v and_o prostrate_v himself_o at_o the_o knee_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v about_o to_o confess_v his_o sin_n and_o receive_v absolution_n from_o the_o same_o s._n justine_n martyr_n anno_fw-la 150._o 79._o quaest_n 79._o ask_v a_o question_n why_o god_n permit_v king_n josias_n to_o be_v slay_v with_o a_o sword_n be_v a_o most_o holy_a man_n and_o he_o answer_v in_o these_o word_n certain_o josias_n have_v a_o woeful_a end_n of_o his_o life_n because_o he_o obey_v not_o the_o command_n of_o hieremias_n who_o say_v unto_o he_o by_o god_n command_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o proceed_v to_o meet_v the_o king_n of_o egypt_n in_o battayl_n as_o hieremias_n say_v wherefore_o that_o our_o lord_n may_v receive_v he_o out_o of_o this_o world_n purify_v from_o his_o sin_n he_o therefore_o give_v he_o to_o be_v punish_v for_o his_o disobedience_n by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o egyptian_n s._n irenaeus_n anno_fw-la 160._o say_v fine_a lib._n 4._o cap._n 28_o in_o fine_a he_o teach_v that_o he_o shall_v do_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v by_o god_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v dissolve_v the_o old_a concupiscence_n by_o good_a work_n and_o follow_v christ_n and_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o man_n possess_v be_v distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a do_v make_v a_o dissolution_n of_o that_o concupiscence_n past_a tacheus_n make_v it_o manifest_a say_v behold_v i_o give_v one_o half_a of_o my_o good_n to_o the_o poor_a paenit_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr paenit_fw-la tertullian_n anno_fw-la 200._o say_v thou_o have_v offend_v but_o thou_o may_v yet_o be_v reconcile_v thou_o have_v one_o to_o who_o thou_o may_v make_v satisfaction_n et_fw-la infra_fw-la satisfaction_n be_v wrought_v by_o confession_n and_o a_o little_a before_o he_o say_v what_o a_o foolish_a thing_n be_v it_o not_o to_o fulfil_v our_o penance_n and_o so_o to_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o not_o to_o pay_v the_o price_n and_o yet_o to_o say_v hold_n on_o the_o merchandise_n for_o our_o lord_n have_v appoint_v to_o grant_v pardon_n for_o this_o price_n he_o have_v determine_v that_o a_o full_a discharge_n from_o punishment_n shall_v be_v obtain_v by_o this_o satisfaction_n of_o penance_n exod._n homii_fw-la 6._o in_o exod._n origen_n anno_o 230._o say_v if_o any_o man_n peradventure_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o devil_n have_v receive_v such_o money_n let_v he_o not_o altogether_o despair_v for_o our_o lord_n be_v merciful_a and_o full_a of_o compassion_n and_o desire_v not_o the_o death_n of_o his_o creature_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o be_v convert_v and_o live_v by_o penance_n weep_v and_o satisfaction_n let_v he_o blot_n out_o that_o which_o be_v commit_v jud._n homil_n 3._o in_o lib._n jud._n again_o see_v say_v he_o how_o our_o merciful_a lord_n mix_v his_o mercy_n with_o severity_n and_o measure_v the_o pain_n itself_o by_o a_o just_a and_o mild_a weight_n he_o do_v not_o whereby_o reject_v offender_n but_o as_o long_o time_n as_o thou_o know_v thou_o have_v err_v as_o long_o time_n as_o thou_o have_v offend_v so_o much_o the_o more_o humble_a thyself_o unto_o god_n and_o satisfy_v he_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o penance_n elcemosynis_n sermone_fw-la do_v opere_fw-la &_o elcemosynis_n s._n cyprian_n anno_fw-la 240._o say_v neither_o shall_v infirmity_n have_v any_o humane_a frailty_n which_o imbecility_n can_v over_o come_v unless_o
areopagita_n to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o author_n of_o the_o heavenly_a or_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n luther_n say_v 84._o say_v tom_fw-mi 2._o wittemberg_fw-mi 1562._o de_fw-la captiu_fw-la babyl_n fol._n 84._o but_o thou_o will_v say_v say_v luther_n what_o say_v you_o to_o dionysius_n who_o number_v six_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v say_v he_o i_o know_v this_o man_n only_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o stand_v for_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n although_o omit_v matrimony_n he_o grant_v six_o only_a the_o same_o affirm_v m._n d._n humphrey_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la etc._n etc._n pag._n 519._o m._n whitaker_n say_v 655._o say_v de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la pag._n 655._o i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o dionysius_n be_v in_o many_o place_n a_o great_a patron_n of_o tradition_n concern_v hermes_n of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v by_o 4._o by_o rom._n 16_o 4._o s._n pauâ_n hamelmanus_fw-la say_v 25._o say_v de_fw-fr trad_a apost_n col_fw-fr 254._o line_n 5â_n and_o col_fw-fr 7â0_n l._n 25._o that_o impure_a book_n of_o the_o pastor_n or_o of_o hermes_n gâue_v a_o good_a beginning_n to_o popery_n which_o say_v he_o the_o father_n do_v esteem_v for_o ecclesiastical_a for_o in_o time_n past_o that_o book_n of_o hermes_n call_v the_o pastor_n c._n pastor_n origenes_n li._n 1._o de_fw-la principijs_fw-la c._n be_v number_v in_o the_o number_n of_o ecclesiastical_a book_n the_o same_o confess_v â4_n confess_v in_o hooker_n l._n 5._o pag_n â4_n m._n hooker_n our_o country_n man_n in_o so_o much_o as_o hamelmanus_fw-la say_v 42_o say_v hamel_n col_fw-fr 273._o line_n 18_o col_fw-fr 255._o li_n 42_o that_o book_n of_o the_o pastor_n say_v he_o seem_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o irenaeus_n clemeni_n and_o origen_n and_o other_o father_n but_o especial_o by_o irenaeus_n final_o this_o book_n say_v 250._o say_v hamel_n col_fw-fr 252._o sine_fw-la and_o 253._o init_fw-la and_o 254_o line_n 8._o see_v from_o col_fw-fr 250._o haâ_n lay_v the_o ground_n work_n of_o purgatory_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a merit_n and_o justification_n of_o work_n of_o profess_a chastity_n in_o minister_n of_o fast_v from_o certain_a meat_n etc._n etc._n abraham_n med_n abraham_n abr._n scult_a in_o medulla_n theolog_fw-la etc._n etc._n pag._n 467._o post_n med_n scultetus_n say_v it_o mainten_v free_a will_n monastical_a life_n and_o solitude_n and_o purgatory_n see_v this_o more_o at_o large_a and_o most_o perspicuous_a in_o the_o protestant_n apology_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n fol._n 125._o 126._o the_o 41._o article_n to_o show_v no_o beginning_n of_o a_o doctrine_n be_v a_o infallible_a token_n that_o it_o be_v and_o proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n 51._o apostle_n in_o his_o defence_n against_o m._n cartwryght_a pag._n 51._o m._n whitgift_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n do_v most_o learned_o and_o true_o urge_v this_o general_a rule_n or_o proof_n of_o apostolic_a doctrine_n say_v for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o original_n and_o beginning_n of_o these_o name_n metropolitan_a archbishop_n &c._n &c._n such_o be_v their_o antiquity_n can_v be_v find_v so_o far_o as_o i_o have_v read_v it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v they_o have_v their_o original_n from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o for_o as_o i_o remember_v 118._o remember_v s._n austin_n epist_n 118._o s._n austin_n have_v the_o same_o rule_n in_o proof_n of_o this_o rule_n he_o say_v yet_o further_o 352._o further_o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pag._n 352._o it_o be_v of_o credit_n say_v he_o with_o the_o writer_n of_o our_o time_n namely_o with_o zuinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o gualther_n and_o sure_o i_o think_v no_o learned_a man_n do_v dissent_v from_o they_o m._n cartwryght_o answer_v to_o this_o rule_n ibid._n rule_n ibid._n that_o thereby_o a_o window_n be_v openned_a to_o bring_v in_o all_o popery_n again_o for_o i_o appeal_v say_v he_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o man_n if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v in_o popery_n again_o to_o allow_v of_o s._n augustine_n saing_n etc._n etc._n so_o evident_o do_v our_o learned_a adversary_n and_o the_o apparent_a probability_n of_o this_o rule_n approve_v also_o and_o allow_v by_o e_fw-la m._n d._n field_n confirm_v and_o prove_v our_o fore_n say_v catholic_a religion_n whereto_o we_o be_v so_o many_o age_n since_o convert_v to_o be_v not_o new_a or_o secondary_a since_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o true_o primitive_a and_o undoubted_o apostolyke_a that_o 101._o that_o in_o whit_n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la camp_n rat_n 7._o pag_n 101._o m._n whitaker_n confess_v thou_o the_o time_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n change_n can_v easy_o be_v tell_v 43._o tell_v m_o powell_n in_o his_o consideration_n of_o papist_n supplication_n pag._n 43._o m._n gabriel_n powell_n be_v provoke_v that_o if_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v a_o error_n then_o to_o tell_v we_o when_o this_o error_n come_v in_o and_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o etc._n etc._n answer_v we_o can_v tell_v by_o who_o or_o at_o what_o time_n the_o enemy_n do_v sow_v it_o etc._n etc._n neither_o indeed_o do_v we_o know_v who_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o every_o one_o of_o your_o blasphemous_a opinion_n etc._n etc._n 193._o in_o libro_fw-la apologetico_fw-la etc._n etc._n pag_n 192._o 193._o joannes_n regius_n be_v likwyse_o urge_v to_o show_v wherein_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v change_v her_o faith_n and_o not_o able_a to_o give_v any_o one_o particular_a example_n thereof_o he_o be_v take_v himself_o to_o this_o extreme_a boldness_n answer_v but_o last_o of_o all_o say_v he_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v never_o change_v any_o thing_n in_o her_o religion_n shall_v it_o therefore_o present_o follow_v it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n out_o of_o all_o which_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v that_o according_a to_o m._n whitgifte_n aforesaid_a rule_n and_o assertion_n whatsoever_o opynion_n be_v not_o know_v to_o have_v begin_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o same_o be_v not_o new_a or_o secondary_a but_o receive_v it_o be_v original_n from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o we_o the_o roman_a religion_n have_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v do_v the_o 42._o article_n true_a miracle_n make_v a_o strong_a argument_n for_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o the_o fore_n say_v faith_n whereunto_o the_o english_a be_v convert_v be_v confirm_v by_o such_o miracle_n as_o in_o the_o nonage_n or_o infancy_n of_o the_o church_n our_o saviour_n do_v make_v manifest_a the_o truth_n of_o his_o apostle_n doctrine_n by_o undoubted_a miracle_n to_o serve_v as_o sign_n of_o their_o apostleship_n 20._o 2._o cor._n 12.12_o marc._n c._n 16._o v._n 20._o and_o to_o that_o end_n confirm_v the_o word_n with_o sign_n follow_v it_o so_o likewise_o this_o virtue_n or_o power_n of_o miracle_n do_v not_o cease_v but_o as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v always_o shine_v in_o the_o church_n the_o necessity_n thereof_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o all_o succeed_a age_n to_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o heathen_a contemn_v the_o scripture_n be_v nothing_o move_v with_o the_o miracle_n therein_o mention_v whereas_o our_o saviour_n say_v 12._o john_n 14._o v._n 12._o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o the_o work_n that_o i_o do_v shall_v he_o do_v and_o great_a in_o the_o marginal_a note_n of_o the_o english_a bible_n print_v anno_fw-la 1576._o it_o be_v there_o upon_o say_v this_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o who_o this_o virtue_n do_v shine_v for_o ever_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o now_o to_o cease_v as_o some_o protestant_n affirm_v s._n irenaeus_n and_o s._n austin_n say_v 1._o s._n irenaeus_n lib_n 2._o c._n 18._o s._n austin_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la doâ_n lib._n 22._o cap._n 1._o why_o say_v they_o be_v not_o those_o miracle_n which_o you_o preach_v to_o have_v be_v do_v now_o do_v certain_o i_o may_v say_v they_o be_v necessary_a before_o the_o world_n do_v believe_v for_o this_o end_n that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v and_o a_o little_a after_o now_o also_o they_o be_v do_v in_o his_o name_n miracle_n be_v through_o out_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o scripture_n both_o acknowledge_v and_o urge_v acknowledge_v in_o exod._n 8_o 19_o and_o 3_o of_o king_n 17_o 24_o and_o cap._n 18_o 19_o and_o 4_o of_o king_n 5_o 15_o matth._n 14_o 25_o 33_o and_o cap._n 27_o 54_o john_n 2_o 23_o and_o 3_o 2_o and_z 4_o 53_o and_o 9_o 30_o and_o 11_o 45_o act._n 4_o 14_o 16_o and_o 9_o 35_o urge_v exodus_fw-la 7_o 17_o and_o 16_o 12_o num._n 16_o 28_o josue_n 10_o 16_o and_o 3_o of_o king_n 13_o 3_o 5_o and_o 18_o 24_o 38_o and_o 20_o 23_o 28_o and_o 4_o of_o king_n 20_o 8_o 9_o 10_o matth._n 9_o 6_o mark_n 2_o 10_o john_n 14_o 11_o and_z 15_o 14_o and_o 20_o 30_o 31._o yea_o miracle_n be_v to_o our_o a_o saviour_n himself_o a_o great_a
testimony_n then_o s._n 36._o john_n 25._o v._o 36._o john_n baptist._n 21._o in_o comm._n catech._n pag._n 21._o to_o answer_v the_o objection_n of_o false_a miracle_n vrsinus_n say_v those_o miracle_n whereof_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n boast_v be_v such_o as_o not_o change_v the_o order_n of_o nature_n may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o deceit_n of_o man_n or_o devil_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o miracle_n where_o with_o god_n have_v adorn_v his_o church_n be_v work_n either_o beside_o or_o against_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o secundary_a cause_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o do_v but_o by_o divyne_a power_n 2._o power_n hist_o l._n 2._o c._n 2._o s._n bede_n and_o our_o chronicle_n witness_v that_o s._n austin_n to_o prove_v his_o doctrine_n wrought_v a_o miracle_n in_o restore_a sight_n to_o one_o that_o be_v blind_v which_o kind_n of_o miracle_n â_o miracle_n hem._n in_o his_o exposit_n of_o the_o â4_n psal_n english_v part_n 1._o c._n 6_o bede_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la holinshead_n chronicle_n the_o last_o edition_n vol._n 1._o l_o 5_o c._n 21._o pag._n 102._o l_o 51_o bede_n hist_n l._n 1_o c._n 26_o hol._n pag._n 110._o l._n 60._o m._n fox_n âct_n and_o mon._n anno_fw-la 1576._o pag._n 117._o s._n bede_n lib._n 2_o c._n â_o hemââgius_n acknowledge_v for_o most_o certain_a at_o which_o the_o christian_a britain_n be_v present_a they_o be_v special_o move_v there_o with_o d_o s._n bede_n say_v of_o the_o king_n that_o believe_v through_o the_o sight_n of_o many_o miracle_n he_o be_v baptize_v the_o same_o say_v holinâhead_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la m._n fox_n say_v they_o be_v in_o those_o time_n so_o certain_o know_v that_o as_o s._n bede_n report_v it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o epitaph_n upon_o his_o tomb_n that_o he_o be_v assist_v by_o god_n in_o do_v of_o miracle_n see_v the_o same_o in_o stow_n chronocle_n dedicate_v to_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n print_v 1592._o pag._n 66._o 1._o 66._o gregorius_n l._n 7._o epist_n 30._o indict_v 1._o s._n gregory_n himself_o report_v to_o eulogious_a archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n say_v know_v then_o that_o where_o as_o the_o english_a nation_n etc._n etc._n remain_v hitherto_o in_o infidelity_n i_o do_v by_o the_o help_n of_o your_o prayer_n etc._n etc._n send_v unto_o that_o nation_n augustine_n a_o monk_n of_o my_o monastery_n to_o preach_v to_o they_o etc._n etc._n and_o now_o letter_n be_v come_v to_o we_o both_o of_o his_o health_n and_o of_o his_o work_n that_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n and_o sure_o either_o he_o or_o they_o that_o be_v send_v over_o with_o he_o work_v so_o many_o miracle_n in_o that_o land_n as_o they_o may_v seem_v therein_o to_o imitate_v the_o power_n and_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o 39_o themselves_o in_o his_o letter_n date_v 602_o see_v also_o holinshead_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pag._n 192._o line_n 25._o s._n bede_n l._n 1._o c._n 31_o and_o hol._n 102._o line_n 10._o etc._n etc._n m._n fox_n a_o &_o and_o moâ_n anno_fw-la 1576._o pag_n 117_o m._n godwine_n in_o his_o catolog_n of_o bish._n of_o england_n pag_n 4_o bedel_n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o fox_n act_n and_o mon._n 1576._o pag._n 121_o 122._o hol._n last_o edition_n vol._n 1_o pag._n 108._o 109._o line_n 29._o 30._o etc._n etc._n fox_n in_o his_o alphabet_n table_n of_o his_o act_n and_o mon_fw-fr 1576._o at_o the_o word_n miracle_n lib._n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la mal_fw-fr cent_n 12._o col_fw-fr 1633._o line_n 39_o also_o he_o do_v special_o write_v unto_o s._n austin_n touch_v miracle_n do_v by_o he_o advise_v he_o not_o to_o glory_v in_o they_o but_o rather_o to_o consider_v that_o god_n give_v he_o that_o gift_n for_o the_o weal_n and_o good_a of_o those_o unto_o who_o he_o be_v send_v etc._n etc._n this_o letter_n of_o gregory_n be_v exstant_fw-la in_o s._n bede_n and_o mention_v by_o holinshead_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la in_o so_o much_o that_o m._n fox_n and_o m._n godwin_n both_o learned_a protestant_n do_v also_o mention_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o miracle_n then_o wrought_v by_o austin_n through_o god_n hand_n also_o s._n bede_n m._n fox_n and_o holinshead_n do_v make_v special_a mention_n of_o the_o miraculous_a conversion_n of_o edwin_n king_n of_o the_o worthumber_n which_o happenned_a some_o six_o and_o twenty_o year_n after_o austin_n aforesaid_a come_n into_o england_n which_o m._n fox_n doubt_v not_o to_o place_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o true_a miracle_n as_o concern_v the_o miracle_n of_o malachias_n archbishop_n of_o ireland_n and_o the_o pope_n legate_n no_o mean_a a_o witness_n then_o s._n bernard_n his_o very_a familiar_a friend_n say_v of_o they_o in_o general_a in_o what_o kind_n of_o old_a miracle_n say_v he_o do_v not_o malachias_n excel_v he_o want_v not_o prophecy_n not_o revelation_n not_o the_o gift_n of_o healinge_v and_o to_o conclude_v not_o raise_v of_o the_o dead_a this_o be_v also_o mention_v and_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o centuriste_n in_o the_o book_n entitle_v a_o report_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o congo_n a_o region_n of_o africa_n print_v anno_fw-la 1597._o by_o m._n abraham_n hartwell_n servant_n to_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n &_o by_o he_o dedicate_v to_o his_o lord_n 1._o l._n 1._o c._n 1._o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o discovery_n of_o that_o kingdom_n anno_fw-la 1587._o by_o odoardo_n lopaz_n and_o of_o the_o conversion_n thereof_o to_o the_o christian_a faith_n 2._o l._n 2._o c._n 2._o and_o of_o the_o great_a and_o undoubted_a miracle_n show_v by_o god_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o whole_a army_n 3._o c._n 3._o in_o so_o much_o that_o m._n hartwell_n in_o his_o epistle_n there_o to_o the_o reader_n about_o the_o midst_n confess_v that_o this_o conversion_n of_o congo_n be_v accomplish_v by_o mass_a priest_n &_o after_o the_o romish_a manner_n and_o this_o action_n say_v he_o which_o tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n shall_v it_o be_v conceal_v and_o not_o commit_v to_o memory_n because_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o popish_a priest_n and_o popish_a mean_n god_n forbid_v in_o like_o manner_n m._n john_n pory_n late_o of_o gonevill_n and_o catus_n college_n in_o cambridg_n in_o the_o geographical_a history_n of_o africa_n by_o he_o publish_v anno_o 1600._o acknowldege_v and_o mention_v the_o say_a miracle_n 410._o pag._n 410._o and_o commend_v m._n hartwell_n for_o publish_v his_o foresay_a treatyse_n 56._o pag._n 413._o rerum_fw-la in_o oriente_fw-la gestinarum_fw-la commentarius_fw-la fol._n 2._o anno_fw-la 15_o 41._o pag_n 6._o date_v in_o april_n 15._o 56._o also_o it_o appear_v in_o a_o book_n entitle_v as_o in_o the_o margin_n that_o franciscus_n xaverius_n a_o jesuit_n set_v for_o ward_n in_o his_o journey_n from_o lysbone_n to_o the_o east_n india_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o that_o nation_n and_o that_o the_o king_n of_o portugal_n hear_v of_o the_o great_a miracle_n that_o be_v by_o they_o there_o wrought_v send_v forth_o his_o commission_n to_o his_o viceroy_a there_o to_o take_v examination_n thereof_o upon_o oath_n upon_o execution_n whereof_o and_o certificate_n there_o upon_o according_o make_v it_o do_v appear_v that_o zaverius_n in_o testimony_n and_o proof_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n by_o he_o then_o preach_v and_o teach_v 8._o fol._n 8._o cure_v miraculous_o the_o dumb_a the_o lame_a the_o deaf_a and_o with_o his_o word_n heal_v the_o sick_a 9_o fol._n 9_o and_o raise_v sundry_a dead_a person_n to_o life_n and_o after_o his_o death_n the_o grave_n be_v openned_a where_o in_o his_o dead_a body_n for_o a_o time_n have_v lame_a bury_v 1552._o fol_z 14._o anno_o 1552._o to_o the_o end_n his_o naked_a bone_n may_v be_v carry_v from_o thence_o to_o goa_n they_o find_v his_o body_n not_o only_o unconsume_v but_o also_o yield_v forth_o fragrant_a smell_n from_o whence_o they_o carry_v it_o to_o goa_n and_o place_v it_o there_o in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n paul_n where_o yet_o to_o this_o day_n say_v the_o commentary_n it_o remain_v free_a from_o corruption_n witness_n whereof_o say_v that_o treatise_n be_v all_o the_o in_o habitantes_fw-la of_o that_o city_n and_o travayler_n that_o repair_v thither_o the_o truth_n hereof_o for_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v so_o probable_a that_o m._n whitaker_n dare_v not_o in_o his_o answer_n there_o to_o altogether_o rest_n in_o denial_n of_o it_o 354._o lib._n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la contra_fw-la bellarmine_n pag._n 35â_n pag._n 354._o but_o say_v let_v not_o bellarmine_n think_v that_o i_o do_v altogether_o contemn_v these_o miracle_n i_o answer_v it_o may_v be_v that_o there_o have_v be_v such_o miracle_n in_o the_o popish_a government_n and_o perchance_o now_o there_o be_v the_o devil_n may_v say_v he_o preserve_v for_o a_o time_n the_o body_n of_o xaverius_n uncorrupt_a and_o yield_v forth_o sweet_a smell_n here_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o deny_v these_o miracle_n as_o
over_o bold_o refer_v they_o to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n whereas_o yet_o to_o the_o contrary_a m._n richard_n hackluite_o preacher_n in_o his_o book_n of_o principal_a navigation_n etc._n etc._n print_a anno_o 1599_o iâitiâ_fw-la in_o the_o 2._o part_n of_o the_o 2._o vol._n pag_n 88_o iâitiâ_fw-la doubt_v not_o to_o afford_v commendable_a mention_n of_o that_o holy_a man_n xaverius_n his_o particular_a virtue_n and_o wonderful_a work_n in_o that_o religion_n these_o few_o may_v suffice_v in_o this_o place_n see_v more_o at_o large_a and_o with_o full_a answer_n to_o all_o objection_n in_o the_o eleven_o note_n of_o the_o church_n translate_v out_o of_o card._n bellarm._n into_o english_a the_o 43._o article_n our_o adversary_n oppose_v father_n against_o father_n answer_v now_o to_o answer_v our_o adversary_n last_o shift_n and_o which_o they_o often_o use_v in_o allege_v father_n against_o father_n yea_o and_o the_o same_o father_n against_o himself_o where_o upon_o occasion_n offer_v they_o speak_v something_o more_o obscure_a especial_o if_o there_o be_v not_o have_v due_a consideration_n of_o all_o circumstance_n induce_v they_o there_o unto_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o they_o so_o handle_v the_o father_n so_o much_o against_o they_o when_o they_o spare_v not_o their_o own_o and_o chief_a doctor_n in_o make_v they_o say_v what_o they_o listen_v for_o their_o purpose_n witness_v luther_n who_o say_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v 254._o in_o praefat_fw-la in_o smalcaldicoâ_n articulos_fw-la extant_a in_o luke_n osiander_n epitome_n cent_n 16._o pag._n 253._o and_o 254._o how_o shall_v i_o complain_v as_o yet_o i_o live_v i_o write_v preach_v and_o teach_v public_o and_o daily_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v envious_a man_n not_o only_o of_o our_o adversary_n but_o also_o false_a brethren_n which_o say_v they_o agree_v with_o we_o and_o yet_o dare_v bring_v and_o bold_o allege_v my_o own_o write_n and_o doctrine_n again_o myself_o i_o yet_o live_v see_v and_o hear_v it_o although_o they_o know_v that_o i_o teach_v other_o wise_a and_o do_v not_o stick_v to_o adorn_v their_o poison_n with_o my_o labour_n etc._n etc._n what_o then_o will_v they_o do_v after_o my_o death_n etc._n etc._n certain_o i_o must_v answer_v to_o all-thing_n whilst_o i_o yet_o live_v etc._n etc._n 77._o de_fw-fr veritate_fw-la corporis_fw-la christian_n cana_n pag._n 76_o 77._o gerhardus_fw-la gâeschenius_n s_z say_v they_o endeavour_n to_o make_v the_o augustan_n confession_n which_o teach_v the_o real_a presence_n to_o be_v zuinglian_n that_o be_v against_o the_o real_a presence_n wherefore_o exclayming_a he_o say_v further_a if_o this_o have_v be_v do_v in_o arabia_n armenia_n sardinia_n or_o such_o like_a remote_a country_n and_o of_o former_a time_n this_o usurpation_n of_o fraud_n and_o historical_a falsehood_n be_v more_o tolerable_a but_o see_v say_v they_o the_o question_n be_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v do_v in_o our_o own_o time_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n who_o with_o a_o quiet_a mind_n can_v endure_v such_o lie_n this_o may_v suffice_v to_o show_v our_o adversary_n corruption_n in_o detort_v unto_o a_o wrong_a sense_n the_o obscure_a place_n of_o the_o father_n but_o let_v we_o as_o well_o in_o read_v they_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o such_o like_a write_n follow_v the_o advice_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n who_o exhort_v the_o more_o learned_a sort_n to_o the_o read_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o other_o wise_n be_v very_o much_o give_v to_o idle_a play_n and_o game_a say_v take_v the_o book_n into_o thy_o hand_n lazaro_n homil._n 3._o de_fw-fr lazaro_n read_v the_o whole_a history_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v easy_a keep_v in_o memory_n and_o which_o be_v obscure_a and_o not_o manifest_a read_v often_o and_o if_o thou_o can_v not_o by_o diligence_n in_o read_v understand_v what_o be_v say_v approach_v unto_o the_o wise_a go_v unto_o the_o doctor_n thessalon_n homil._n 3._o in_o 2_o ad_fw-la thessalon_n again_o what_o obscurity_n be_v that_o say_v he_o speak_v i_o pray_v be_v they_o not_o history_n thou_o know_v that_o which_o be_v clear_a and_o evident_a what_o have_v thou_o to_o do_v with_o obscurity_n yea_o in_o place_n that_o be_v dubious_a or_o obscure_a 382._o in_o epist_n theolog._n epist_n 82._o pag._n 382._o the_o advice_n of_o beza_n be_v not_o to_o be_v mislike_v who_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o na_z objection_n out_o of_o caluin_n say_v place_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o writer_n ought_v often_o time_n to_o be_v compare_v together_o that_o it_o may_v plain_o beseem_v what_o be_v his_o meaning_n and_o opynion_n because_o all_o thing_n can_v nor_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v speak_v in_o all_o place_n although_o it_o be_v of_o one_o and_o thesame_a thing_n the_o 44._o article_n our_o adversary_n general_n abiur_v the_o father_n and_o condemn_v their_o doctrine_n m._n whitaker_n say_v 55._o contra_fw-la duraeum_n l._n 6._o pag._n 423._o lib._n de_fw-fr aquavitae_fw-la juellâ_n printedat_fw-la londoâ_n pag._n 212._o m._n fulk_n in_o his_o retentive_a against_o bristol_n pag._n 55._o the_o popish_a religion_n be_v a_o patch_a coverl_v of_o the_o father_n error_n sow_v to_o gether_o m._n d_o humfâe_fw-fr do_v earnest_o reprehend_v m._n juell_n for_o his_o so_o bold_a appeal_n to_o the_o father_n affirm_v therefore_o of_o jewel_o that_o herein_o he_o give_v the_o papist_n to_o large_a a_o scope_n be_v injurious_a to_o himself_o and_o after_o a_o manner_n spoil_v himself_o and_o the_o church_n thesame_n also_o say_v m._n fulk_n 296._o fulk_n in_o sciatagematum_fw-la satanae_n l._n 6._o pag._n 296._o jacobus_n âscontius_fw-la a_o learned_a protestant_n say_v of_o protestant_n allege_v the_o father_n that_o some_o have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o they_o have_v even_o fill_v all_o thing_n again_o with_o the_o father_n and_o their_o authority_n which_o i_o will_v to_o god_n say_v he_o they_o have_v do_v with_o as_o good_a success_n as_o they_o begin_v it_o with_o good_a hope_n etc._n etc._n certain_o i_o think_v this_o custom_n most_o pernicious_a and_o by_o all_o mean_n to_o be_v avoid_v etc._n etc._n luther_n say_v jonam_fw-la tom_fw-mi â_o wittember_v anno_o 1551._o lib._n de_fw-fr seruo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la pag._n 434._o in_o jonam_fw-la the_o father_n of_o so_o many_o age_n have_v be_v plain_o blind_a &_o most_o ignorant_a in_o the_o scripture_n &_o have_v err_v say_v he_o all_o their_o life_n time_n so_o that_o unless_o they_o be_v amend_v before_o their_o death_n they_o be_v neither_o saint_n say_v he_o nor_o perteyn_a to_o the_o church_n pomeran_n a_o learned_a protestant_n say_v our_o forefather_n whether_o holy_a or_o not_o holy_a i_o care_v not_o be_v all_o blind_v with_o a_o montanicall_a spirit_n by_o humane_a tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n etc._n etc._n 1587._o beza_n in_o his_o praef_n upon_o the_o new_a test_n dedicat_fw-la to_o the_o prince_n of_o condy_n anno_fw-la 1587._o they_o do_v not_o say_v he_o teach_v pure_o justification_n etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v they_o indeed_o careful_a to_o teach_v jesus_n christ_n true_o in_o their_o gospel_n beza_n affirm_v that_o even_o in_o the_o best_a time_n the_o ambition_n ignorance_n and_o leudnes_n of_o bishop_n be_v such_o that_o the_o very_a blind_a may_v easy_o preceave_v how_o that_o satan_n be_v present_a and_o do_v sit_v over_o their_o assemble_v and_o counsel_n m._n whitaker_n say_v 40_o say_v l._n de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la pag._n 21._o m._n cartwright_n in_o his_o 2._o reply_n part_n 2._o pag._n 508._o peter_n marâân_v his_o comm_n place_n in_o english_a part_n 4._o pag_n 255._o caluin_n in_o omnes_fw-la pauli_n epistolas_fw-la ad_fw-la hebr._fw-la c._n 7._o v._n 9_o pag._n 924._o and_o de_fw-la vera_fw-la eccles_n reforma_fw-la pag._n â89_n danaeus_n disput_fw-la part_n 1_o pag_n 116._o w._n whit_n contra_fw-la duraeum_n l._n 8._o pag_n 567._o and_o 773._o cent_n 2._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 58._o l._n â0_n and_o cent_n 3._o c._n 4_o col_fw-fr 77._o 78._o and_o col_fw-fr 48_o line_n 15._o schult_n in_o medulla_n theol._n patrum_fw-la p_o 39_o 304_o 466._o 151._o 105_o 98._o 48._o 66._o 73._o and_o 40_o that_o as_o in_o this_o so_o in_o many_o other_o thing_n they_o err_v m._n cartwright_n say_v that_o diverse_a of_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o chief_a of_o they_o fond_o imagine_v of_o antichrist_n as_o of_o one_o singular_a person_n peter_n martyr_n reprove_v the_o father_n in_o general_a say_n the_o father_n shall_v not_o with_o so_o much_o liberty_n have_v seem_v here_o and_o there_o so_o to_o abuse_v the_o name_n altar_n caluin_n with_o the_o ancient_a writer_n can_v be_v excuse_v for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o have_v decline_v from_o the_o pure_a and_o true_a institution_n of_o christ_n bellarmine_n allege_v the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n in_o proof_n of_o lymbus_n patrum_fw-la danaeus_n answer_v he_o say_v
as_o for_o they_o they_o be_v not_o instruct_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n m._n whitaker_n against_o duraeus_n say_v what_o thou_o can_v not_o overcome_v by_o scripture_n thou_o will_v with_o out_o doubt_v effect_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o father_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o you_o shall_v not_o expect_v that_o i_o do_v in_o particular_a confute_v these_o their_o error_n the_o century-writers_a and_o abraham_n scultetus_n say_v that_o clement_n do_v every_o where_n affirm_v free_a will_n and_o that_o it_o appear_v that_o not_o only_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o that_o age_n be_v in_o this_o manner_n of_o blindness_n but_o also_o that_o it_o grow_v a_o among_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n cyprian_n theophilus_n tertullian_n origen_n clemens_n alexandr_n justine_n irenaeus_n etc._n etc._n err_v in_o this_o point_n luther_n call_v s._n hierome_n ambrose_n augustine_n and_o other_o justice-worker_n of_o the_o old_a papistry_n or_o papacy_n of_o certain_a father_n in_o particular_a petrus_n alexandrinus_n peter_n martyr_n reprove_v he_o say_v petrus_n alexandr_n 255._o in_o his_o comm_n place_n in_o english_a part_n 4_o pag._n 255._o attributhe_v more_o to_o the_o outward_a altar_n then_o to_o the_o lively_a temple_n of_o christ_n optatus_n peter_n say_v where_o optatus_n against_o permenianus_n say_v supra_fw-la ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la what_o be_v the_o altar_n even_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 25_o cent_z 4_o c._n 6_o col_fw-fr 409._o line_n 25_o but_o such_o say_n as_o these_o say_v peter_n martyr_n edify_v not_o the_o people_n the_o same_o say_v they_o century-writers_a s._n ignatius_n m._n cartwright_n say_v 349._o in_o his_o 2._o reply_n ult_v part_v part_n 264._o m_o wotton_n in_o his_o def_n of_o m_o parkins_n &c_n &c_n pag._n â39_n 349._o ignatius_n call_v the_o communion_n table_n unproper_o a_o altar_n m._n wotton_n say_v i_o say_v plain_o say_v he_o this_o man_n testimony_n be_v nothing_o worth_a because_o he_o be_v of_o little_a judgement_n in_o divinity_n s._n ambrose_n m._n fulke_o say_v that_o ambrose_n 325._o m._n fulk_n in_o his_o confut_o of_o purgat_fw-la pag._n 320._o 325._o allow_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o common_a error_n of_o his_o tyme._n s._n augustine_n m._n fulke_o say_v augustine_n blind_o defend_v it_o 299._o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la they_o examen_fw-la part_n 3._o pag_n 211._o musc_n loc_fw-la comm_n pag._n 299._o chemnitius_n say_v these_o austin_n do_v without_o the_o scripture_n yield_v to_o time_n and_o custom_n musculus_fw-la say_v austin_n do_v inconsiderate_o affirm_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o give_v salvation_n justine_n martyr_n 40._o cent._n 2._o col_fw-fr 207._o lin_v 40._o century_n writer_n say_v justine_n martyr_v extol_v to_o much_o the_o liberty_n of_o man_n will_n or_o freewill_n chrysostome_n 2178._o cent._n 5._o col_fw-fr 2178._o century-writers_a say_v chrysostome_n handle_v impure_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n and_o attribute_v merit_n to_o work_v luther_n against_o certain_a in_o particular_a ecclesiae_fw-la tom_n 2._o wittemberg_fw-mi lib._n lib_n de_fw-fr seruo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la print_v 1603_o pag_n 72_o 7â_n 275._o and_o 3â7_n alâo_o in_o collo_fw-la ãâã_d mensalibââ_n cap._n de_fw-fr patribus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o the_o write_n of_o hierome_n say_v he_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o sound_a religion_n tertullian_n in_o very_o superstitious_a i_o have_v hold_v origen_n long_o since_o occurse_v of_o chrysostome_n i_o make_v not_o account_v basil_n be_v of_o no_o worth_n he_o be_v whole_o a_o monk_n i_o way_n he_o not_o of_o a_o hair_n cyprian_n be_v a_o weak_a devyne_a etc._n etc._n affirm_v there_o yet_o further_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v degenerate_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o that_o the_o apology_n of_o phillippe_n melanchthon_n do_v far_o excel_v all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o even_a austin_n himself_o these_o luther_n 491._o in_o his_o deâ_n of_o m_o parkins_n etc._n etc._n pag_n 491._o to_o conclude_v m_o wotton_n say_v but_o the_o father_n be_v not_o for_o we_o what_o then_o be_v nothing_o true_a that_o can_v be_v confirm_v by_o their_o testimony_n etc._n etc._n but_o to_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church_n immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n become_v adulterous_a and_o corrupt_a which_o the_o most_o with_o luther_n a_o above_o say_v affirm_v it_o most_o absurd_a first_o because_o the_o visible_a true_a church_n be_v no_o more_o than_o make_v heretical_a or_o corrupt_v by_o the_o church_n revolt_a child_n in_o those_o day_n than_o luther_n like_a late_a disperse_a doctrine_n make_v our_o now_o church_n to_o be_v lutheran_n secund_o if_o other_o wise_a the_o church_n so_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o virgin_n and_o so_o become_v adulterous_a and_o corrupt_a who_o see_v not_o then_o the_o blasphemy_n thence_o ensue_v for_o in_o what_o one_o age_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o this_o present_a may_v the_o church_n then_o be_v think_v to_o be_v preserve_v chaste_a three_o it_o be_v against_o manifest_a scripture_n as_o in_o the_o tract_n where_o the_o church_n can_v err_v see_v more_o at_o large_a wherefore_o once_o more_o to_o conclude_v this_o controversy_n receive_v this_o one_o sentence_n from_o that_o weak_a devyne_a according_a to_o luther_n s._n cyprian_n in_o which_o you_o may_v at_o least_o see_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o day_n ecclesiae_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr veritate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n say_v he_o can_v be_v adulterate_v she_o be_v uncorrupt_a and_o chaste_a etc._n etc._n by_o these_o you_o may_v in_o part_n understand_v what_o esteem_n be_v make_v of_o those_o first_o doctor_n and_o prelate_n of_o god_n church_n though_o in_o the_o tract_n where_o they_o appeal_v to_o the_o father_n and_o in_o that_o where_o the_o church_n can_v err_v free_o confess_v to_o be_v most_o holy_a learned_a and_o devyne_o inspire_v such_o be_v the_o malapert_a obstinacy_n and_o blind_a ignorance_n of_o heresy_n that_o when_o it_o have_v as_o to_o the_o most_o infallible_a interpreter_n and_o doctor_n of_o our_o saviour_n will_n make_v appeal_v and_o find_v it_o thus_o plain_a and_o absolute_a that_o it_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n bear_v any_o colourable_a gloss_n then_o i_o say_v it_o do_v thus_o impudent_o reject_v it_o with_o all_o opprobrious_a speech_n and_o blasphemous_a sentence_n the_o 45._o article_n the_o continual_a purity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n acknowledge_v by_o our_o adversary_n m._n d._n of_o lib_n de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la cont_n sanderum_fw-la pag_n 5._o m._n fulke_o in_o his_o confutat_fw-la of_o whitaker_n acknowledge_v no_o change_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n m._n fulk_n say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n retain_v by_o succession_n until_o tertullian_n day_n viz_o anno_o 200._o that_o faith_n which_o it_o do_v first_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n 148._o purgatory_n pag._n 174._o zanchius_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la religione_fw-la pag._n 148._o the_o same_o affirm_v hierome_n zanchius_n a_o protestant_n and_o where_o one_o of_o our_o catholic_a writer_n urge_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o irenaeus_n 373._o m._n fulk_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pag._n 372._o 373._o cyprian_n tertullian_n optatus_n hierome_n austin_n and_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n m._n fulke_o say_v the_o reason_n why_o these_o man_n special_o name_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n as_o it_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n so_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n 443._o in_o his_o conference_n which_o m_n hart._n pag._n 443._o m._n d._n reynolds_n be_v provoke_v in_o the_o same_o kind_n acknowledge_v in_o like_a manner_n that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v a_o proof_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o faith_n in_o the_o time_n of_o augustine_n epiphamus_n optatus_n tertullian_n irenaeus_n etc._n etc._n 85_o in_o his_o retent_a etc._n etc._n pag._n 85_o m._n fulk_n say_v yet_o further_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v but_o a_o heretical_a assembly_n depart_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n long_o since_o austin_n departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n to_o wit_n long_o after_o they_o year_n 400._o wherein_o s._n austin_n live_v 246._o in_o his_o reply_n to_o m._n harding_n pag._n 246._o m._n jewel_o say_v that_o as_o well_o s._n austin_n as_o all_o other_o holy_a father_n do_v well_o in_o yield_a reverence_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o purity_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v there_o preserve_v a_o long_a time_n with_o out_o spot_n sâ_n instit_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n â_o sâ_n this_o matter_n be_v so_o free_o confess_v we_o will_v conclude_v with_o caluin_n who_o
say_v of_o we_o they_o indeed_o set_v forth_o their_o church_n very_o glorious_o etc._n etc._n they_o report_v out_o of_o irenaeus_n 3._o sect_n 3._o tertullian_n origen_n augustine_n and_o other_o how_o high_o they_o esteem_v this_o succession_n consider_v say_v he_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o from_o the_o beginning_n even_o until_o that_o time_n nothing_o be_v change_v in_o doctrine_n the_o aforesaid_a holy_a doctor_n take_v in_o argument_n that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o over_o throw_v of_o all_o new_a error_n to_o wit_n 2562._o in_o his_o institution_n in_o french_a print_v at_o geneva_n by_o conradus_n âadius_fw-la anno_fw-la 2562._o that_o they_o viz._n heretic_n oppugn_v the_o doctrine_n which_o even_o from_o the_o very_a apostle_n themselves_o have_v be_v inviolable_a and_o with_o one_o consent_n retain_v again_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n notorious_a say_v he_o &_o with_o out_o doubt_v that_o after_o the_o apostle_n age_n until_o those_o foresaid_a time_n no_o change_n be_v make_v ân_o doctrine_n neither_o in_o rome_n nor_o many_o other_o city_n so_o plain_o do_v our_o learned_a adversary_n confess_v that_o no_o change_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n age_n unto_o the_o time_n after_o s._n austin_n etc._n etc._n be_v as_o i_o say_v 400._o year_n after_o christ_n to_o prove_v that_o to_o charge_v heretic_n with_o the_o succession_n of_o roman_a bishop_n meintayn_v always_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n be_v the_o practice_n and_o custom_n of_o those_o ancient_a father_n be_v a_o labour_n save_v be_v already_o so_o liberal_o confess_v but_o for_o better_a satisfaction_n receive_v this_o one_o say_v of_o s._n hierome_n ruffinum_fw-la in_o apolog._n 2_o adu_n ruffinum_fw-la demand_v of_o ruffinus_n say_v how_o do_v he_o call_v his_o faith_n that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v if_o he_o answer_v the_o roman_a than_o we_o be_v catholic_n the_o church_n be_v thus_o acknowledge_v to_o have_v continue_v the_o first_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n in_o all_o purity_n it_o shall_v be_v easy_a to_o prove_v that_o from_o thence_o unto_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n the_o time_n when_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v fall_v the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v likewise_o continue_v and_o so_o receive_v by_o gregory_n the_o first_o than_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o he_o bring_v and_o receive_v by_o we_o and_o unto_o this_o day_n still_o retain_v this_o i_o say_v be_v make_v evident_a by_o our_o learned_a adversary_n have_v already_o confess_v that_o sundry_a even_o of_o the_o chief_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o the_o real_a presence_n sacrifice_n freewill_n etc._n etc._n as_o be_v already_o in_o particular_a handle_v so_o to_o conclude_v where_o as_o they_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n fall_v but_o they_o can_v tell_v when_o be_v very_o absurd_a when_o as_o yet_o there_o be_v never_o any_o other_o heresy_n or_o memorable_a act_n whatsoever_o either_o ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a but_o they_o can_v decipher_v all_o circumstance_n as_o the_o dissent_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n from_o the_o roman_a but_o not_o the_o roman_a from_o the_o primitive_a vincentius_n lyrinensis_n say_v 34._o l._n aduer_v haer_fw-mi cap._n 34._o certain_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o heresy_n but_o it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v give_v under_o some_o certeyn_a name_n in_o a_o certeyn_a place_n and_o at_o a_o certeyn_a time_n 43._o in_o his_o consider_v of_o papist_n supplication_n pag_n 43._o but_o for_o the_o roman_a catholic_a religion_n now_o profess_v m._n powell_n say_v he_o can_v tell_v by_o who_o or_o at_o what_o time_n the_o enemy_n do_v sow_v it_o the_o 46._o article_n the_o catholic_a or_o roman_a faith_n now_o teach_v be_v acknowledge_v by_o protestants_n for_o sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n 17â_n ãâã_d 2._o ãâã_d ââ7_n ãâ¦ã_o in_o he_o epist_n print_a over_o ãâ¦ã_o 5â_n m._n baro_n in_o his_o 4._o sermon_n and_o 2._o question_n depute_v ad_fw-la clorun_v etc._n etc._n ser_n 3_o p._n 44._o m._n hooker_n l._n 5_o the_o eccles_n pol._n pag._n 111._o &_o 130._o m._n bunny_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o pacification_n ãâã_d 18._o pag._n 109._o and_o 113._o m_o d_o some_o as_o he_o be_v cite_v pag._n 164_o 182._o 17â_n a_o protestant_a preacher_n preach_v at_o peterborrow_o at_o the_o funeral_n of_o one_o who_o die_v a_o profess_a papist_n viz_o the_o queen_n of_o scot_n he_o pray_v that_o his_o soul_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o there_o present_a may_v be_v with_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a papist_n m._n d._n baro._n say_v i_o dare_v not_o deny_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n to_o the_o romanist_n since_o the_o more_o learned_a wâyter_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n m._n hooker_n say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v repute_v a_o part_n of_o the_o hâwse_n of_o god_n a_o limn_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n yea_o we_o glad_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o family_n of_o jesus_n christ_n m_o bunny_n likewise_o say_v of_o catholic_n and_o protestants_n neither_o of_o we_o say_v he_o may_v just_o account_v the_o other_o to_o be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yea_o we_o be_v no_o several_a church_n from_o they_o nor_o they_o from_o us._n m_o d._n some_o in_o his_o defence_n against_o m._n penây_n the_o puritan_n and_o refutation_n of_o many_o absurdity_n etc._n etc._n in_o m_n pânâ_n treatise_n say_v the_o papist_n be_v not_o altogether_o alien_n from_o god_n covenant_n as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o for_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o learned_a man_n and_o all_o âeâormed_a church_n there_o be_v in_o popery_n a_o church_n a_o ministry_n a_o true_a christ_n etc._n etc._n if_o you_o think_v say_v he_o that_o all_o the_o popish_a sort_n which_o die_v in_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v damn_v you_o think_v absurd_o and_o dissent_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a protestants_n m._n d._n field_n say_v we_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o church_n 182._o m._n d_o field_n de_fw-fr eccles_n lib_n 3._o cap._n 46._o line_n &_o pag._n 182._o wherein_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o more_o than_o lucifer_n like_o pride_n exalt_v himself_o be_v notwithstanding_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o hold_v a_o save_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o force_n or_o virtue_n thereof_o do_v convert_v many_o from_o error_n etc._n etc._n m._n d._n 77_o m._n morton_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n and_o of_o the_o church_n pagâ_n 94._o peter_n mar._n in_o his_o epist_n annex_v to_o his_o comm_n place_n in_o english_a pag._n 153._o m._n d._n covell_n as_o he_o be_v cyââd_v pag_n 77_o thomas_n morton_n affirm_v in_o express_a word_n that_o papist_n be_v to_o be_v account_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o say_v he_o they_o hold_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o gospel_n which_o be_v faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n peter_n martyr_n desire_v at_o the_o conference_n have_v at_o poysy_a between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o protestants_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o for_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n break_v brotherly_a charity_n or_o call_v one_o the_o other_o heretic_n last_o m._n d._n covell_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o m._n hooker_n five_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n publish_v by_o authority_n &_o dedicate_v to_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n defend_v this_o opinion_n at_o large_a and_o conclude_v say_v we_o affirm_v that_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o such_o as_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o church_n may_v not_o withstand_v be_v save_v 61._o pag._n 61._o in_o so_o much_o as_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o charge_v the_o puritan_n with_o ignorance_n for_o their_o contrary_a opinion_n the_o 47._o article_n a_o testimony_n from_o the_o enemy_n be_v of_o great_a account_n for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o learned_a adversary_n do_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a piece_n of_o work_n to_o convince_v the_o adversary_n from_o himself_o for_o a_o more_o full_a satisfaction_n we_o think_v it_o not_o a_o miss_n to_o make_v use_n of_o this_o argument_n also_o 182._o de_fw-fr eccles_n l._n 3_o c_o 47._o initio_fw-la pag._n 182._o m._n d._n field_n therefore_o say_v the_o next_o note_n whereby_o bellarmine_n endeavore_v to_o prove_v the_o romish_a synagogue_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n be_v our_o own_o confession_n sure_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o we_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v the_o church_n he_o need_v not_o use_v any_o other_o argument_n 366._o de_fw-fr eccles_n controu_fw-fr 2._o quaest_n 5._o cap_n 24._o pag._n 366._o m._n d._n whitaker_n say_v the_o argument_n must_v
needs_o bestrong_a which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n for_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n against_o themselves_o be_v effectual_a and_o true_o say_v he_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o truth_n enforce_v testimony_n from_o her_o enemy_n 329._o contra_fw-la donatist_n post_fw-la collat_n cap._n 24_o in_o his_o comm_n place_n part_n 2_o pag_n 329._o s._n austin_n say_v that_o truth_n be_v more_o forceable_a to_o wring_v out_o confession_n then_o any_o rack_n or_o torment_v peter_n martyr_n say_v doubtless_o among_o all_o testimony_n that_o testimony_n be_v of_o great_a account_n which_o be_v testify_v by_o the_o enemy_n here_o you_o see_v that_o to_o the_o end_n there_o be_v no_o mean_n leave_v unsought_a whereby_o to_o make_v this_o our_o so_o weighty_a a_o case_n clear_a 4.41_o deut._n 32.31_o esay_n 19.2.3_o esdras_n ca._n 4.41_o we_o have_v make_v even_o our_o ennimies_n judge_n &_o bring_v forth_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o egyptian_n against_o the_o egyptian_n for_o certain_o as_o it_o be_v write_v truth_n be_v great_a and_o prevail_v the_o 48._o article_n of_o the_o purity_n or_o rather_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 146._o pag._n 146._o m._n jacob_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o christ_n suffering_n print_v 1600._o say_v this_o be_v the_o profit_n that_o come_v by_o ordinary_a slaunt_n with_o the_o father_n &c_n &c_n if_o in_o this_o case_n we_o be_v to_o look_v after_o any_o man_n sure_o we_o have_v more_o cause_n to_o regard_v our_o late_a faithful_a teacher_n rather_o than_o those_o of_o old_a who_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o best_a of_o they_o in_o any_o of_o the_o excellent_a grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n etc._n etc._n m._n whitgift_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n in_o his_o defence_n and_o brief_a comparison_n of_o the_o protestant_n bishop_n of_o our_o time_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n faith_n 472_o pag_n 472_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v and_o profess_v by_o our_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n be_v much_o more_o perfect_a &_o sound_a then_o common_o it_o be_v in_o any_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n again_o 473._o pag_n 473._o sure_o say_v he_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o reckon_v in_o any_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n any_o company_n of_o bishop_n that_o catch_v and_o hold_v so_o perfect_a and_o sound_v a_o doctrine_n in_o all_o point_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n do_v at_o this_o day_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n our_o bishop_n be_v not_o only_o comparable_a with_o the_o old_a bishop_n but_o in_o many_o degree_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o they_o beza_n say_v i_o have_v be_v accustom_v to_o say_v 5_o in_o epist_n theolog._n epist_n 1_o pag._n 5_o and_o not_o without_o cause_n as_o i_o take_v it_o that_o while_o i_o compare_v those_o very_a time_n next_o unto_o the_o apostle_n with_o our_o time_n they_o have_v they_o more_o conscience_n and_o less_o knowledge_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o have_v now_o more_o knowledge_n and_o less_o conscience_n condicuâ_n in_o praefat_fw-la in_o now_o test_n dicat_fw-la principi_fw-la condicuâ_n this_o be_v my_o opinion_n say_v he_o etc._n etc._n in_o so_o much_o as_o he_o affirm_v that_o caluin_n do_v far_o exceed_v all_o the_o ancient_a and_o late_a writer_n in_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n with_o variety_n of_o word_n and_o allege_v of_o reason_n all_o which_o be_v direct_o against_o m._n bancroft_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n 37â_n pag._n 37â_n in_o the_o survey_n of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a discipline_n where_o he_o say_v for_o m._n caluin_n and_o m._n beza_n i_o do_v think_v of_o they_o as_o their_o writing_n deserve_v but_o yet_o i_o think_v better_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n 64._o pag._n 64._o i_o must_v say_v he_o confess_v it_o also_o the_o more_o advise_v 64._o see_v chemnitius_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la council_n trident._n part_n pag._n 74._o 64._o and_o sober_a protestants_n to_o use_v their_o own_o word_n doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n not_o only_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o also_o the_o right_n and_o true_a sense_n thereof_o and_o that_o we_o be_v great_o confirm_v in_o the_o true_a and_o sound_a sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n in_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n in_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n 406._o pag._n 406._o it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v the_o true_a and_o best_a mistress_n of_o posterity_n which_o go_v before_o lead_v we_o the_o way_n saravia_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o do_v sit_v over_o defenâ_n in_o defenâ_n and_o his_o precedent_n in_o the_o church_n â_o tract_n de_fw-fr diversis_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la gradibus_fw-la pag._n â_o be_v the_o true_a interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o he_o therefore_o ought_v the_o true_a interpretation_n be_v seek_v and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o which_o be_v over_o the_o church_n and_o have_v govern_v it_o by_o bishop_n now_o to_o reject_v they_o be_v not_o a_o greable_a to_o truth_n 35._o in_o defence_n apologiae_fw-la print_v anno_o 1573._o pag._n 35._o m._n jewel_o say_v the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v under_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n have_v evermore_o be_v account_v the_o purie_v of_o all_o other_o without_o exception_n the_o 49._o article_n of_o heretic_n impudency_n imprimis_fw-la luther_n 299._o tom_n 5._o add_v gal._n cap._n 1._o fol_z 299._o martin_n luther_n have_v a_o scholar_n to_o dispute_v against_o his_o adversary_n in_o this_o manner_n do_v encourage_v he_o the_o argument_n say_v he_o of_o the_o papist_n i_o think_v be_v very_o probable_a and_o strong_a that_o be_v the_o church_n do_v thus_o think_v and_o teach_v it_o so_o many_o year_n all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n most_o holy_a man_n do_v also_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v thus_o and_o so_o teach_v it_o what_o be_v thou_o say_v he_o that_o dare_v disagree_v from_o all_o these_o but_o afterward_o hear_v luther_n himself_o against_o these_o when_o satan_n say_v he_o do_v urge_v this_o matter_n confident_o say_v whether_o cyprian_a augustine_n ambrose_n or_o s._n peter_n paul_n john_n yea_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v otherwise_o not_o withstand_v this_o i_o know_v for_o certain_a that_o i_o do_v not_o persuade_v humane_a but_o devyne_a think_v for_o this_o i_o may_v speak_v with_o confidence_n let_v therbe_n the_o church_n with_o austin_n and_o other_o doctor_n also_o s._n peter_n paul_n john_n yea_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n which_o do_v teach_v a_o contrary_a not_o withstand_v my_o doctrine_n be_v such_o that_o it_o do_v illustrate_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n only_o peter_n be_v chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n and_o teach_v with_o out_o the_o word_n of_o god_n these_o luther_n again_o where_o he_o bid_v adieu_o to_o all_o father_n arbitrio_fw-la lib._n the_o fââ_n 1â_n arbitrio_fw-la counsel_n divine_v school_n bishop_n the_o consent_n of_o all_o age_n and_o christian_a people_n say_v in_o this_o manner_n we_o receive_v all_o scripture_n say_v he_o but_o so_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o interpret_n it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n what_o we_o interpret_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v teach_v what_o other_o do_v bring_v although_o they_o be_v great_a although_o they_o be_v many_o it_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o wicked_a mind_n again_o luther_n perceive_v that_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n â_o rom._n â_o we_o think_v a_o man_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o la_o not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v justification_n by_o faith_n do_v add_v this_o particle_n only_a and_o when_o he_o be_v admonish_v of_o it_o thus_o he_o answer_v 144._o tom_fw-mi 5._o fol_z 141._o &_o 144._o so_o i_o will_v so_o i_o command_v it_o let_v my_o will_v stand_v for_o a_o reason_n etc._n etc._n luther_n will_v have_v it_o so_o and_o say_v he_o be_v a_o doctor_n above_o all_o doctor_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o conclude_v moreover_o say_v he_o this_o word_n only_a aught_o to_o remain_v in_o my_o testament_n although_o all_o papist_n run_v make_v at_o it_o and_o it_o greeve_v i_o say_v he_o that_o i_o have_v not_o add_v these_o twoe_o word_n without_o all_o work_n and_o law_n again_o in_o his_o book_n against_o king_n henry_n 8._o he_o speak_v thus_o the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v he_o be_v above_o all-thing_n the_o devyne_a majesty_n make_v for_o i_o so_o that_o i_o nothing_o care_n if_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o austin_n a_o thousand_o cyprian_n and_o a_o thousand_o henries_n against_o i_o if_o i_o be_o no_o prophet_n say_v he_o yet_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v stand_v for_o i_o i_o
endeavour_n whole_o to_o possess_v this_o man_n lutheri_fw-la man_n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la confess_v lutheri_fw-la oecolampadius_n forewarn_v luther_n lest_o that_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o arrogancy_n and_o pride_n he_o be_v seduce_v by_o the_o devil_n the_o devyne_n of_o tigur_n zwinglians_n against_o luther_n 3._o in_o confess_v germ_fw-la impressa_fw-la tiguri_fw-la anno_fw-la 1544._o in_fw-la octava_fw-la fol._n 3._o in_o time_n past_a say_v they_o luther_n put_v forth_o a_o book_n entitle_v brevis_fw-la confessio_fw-la de_fw-la sacramento_n in_o which_o he_o do_v plead_v plain_o for_o the_o heretical_a sacramentary_n and_o most_o wicked_a man_n and_o condemn_v oecolampadius_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o all_o the_o tigurius_fw-la the_o book_n out_o they_o be_v full_a of_o devil_n full_a of_o shameful_a scoffinge_n and_o mockery_n 274._o fol._n 274._o it_o a_o bound_v in_o anger_n and_o fury_n yea_o luther_n forget_v god_n and_o his_o divinity_n call_v we_o a_o damnable_a and_o execrable_a sect._n but_o let_v he_o see_v whether_o by_o such_o manner_n of_o anger_n and_o wicked_a taunt_n he_o do_v not_o declare_v himself_o the_o archhereticke_n see_v he_o will_v not_o nor_o can_v have_v any_o society_n with_o those_o that_o confess_v christ_n but_o how_o marueillous_o do_v luther_n here_o bewray_v himself_o with_o his_o devil_n what_o filthy_a word_n say_v they_o do_v he_o use_v and_o such_o as_o be_v replenish_v with_o all_o the_o devil_n in_o hell_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o devil_n dwell_v both_o now_o and_o ever_o in_o the_o zwinglians_n and_o that_o they_o have_v a_o blasphemous_a breast_n insathanize_v and_o that_o they_o have_v beside_o a_o most_o vain_a mouth_n over_o which_o satan_n bear_v rule_v be_v infuse_v perfused_a and_o transfuse_v into_o thesame_n do_v ever_o man_n out_o they_o hear_v such_o speech_n palse_a from_o a_o superious_a devil_n himself_o these_o they_o caluin_n against_o luther_n the_o lutheran_n say_v he_o be_v a_o mad_a hare_n brain_a kind_n of_o people_n a_o proud_a faction_n of_o giant_n westphal_a admonitione_n 3._o add_v joachinium_n westphal_a frantic_a beast_n prodigious_o blind_a desperate_o impudent_a they_o be_v no_o other_o than_o falsifier_n and_o wicked_a slanderer_n froward_a more_o than_o blockish_a proud_a and_o also_o so_o ignorant_a that_o what_o be_v deliver_v to_o child_n in_o catechism_n their_o elder_a devyne_n be_v altogegether_o ignorant_a of_o a_o brute_n kind_a of_o wen._n who_o do_v never_o know_v or_o taste_v what_o value_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v of_o or_o to_o what_o end_v it_o do_v tend_v who_o also_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o drop_n of_o shame_n in_o they_o who_o be_v as_o if_o all_o their_o whole_a life_n they_o have_v study_v nothing_o but_o excommunication_n in_o all_o their_o write_n still_o threaten_v some_o thing_n or_o other_o exceed_v all_o the_o pop_z scribe_n and_o clerk_n and_o thus_o rail_v they_o hope_v to_o over_o throw_v the_o most_o just_a cause_n of_o the_o gospel_n joannes_n campanus_n a_o caluinist_n against_o luther_n 154._o in_o colloquijs_fw-la latinis_fw-la luth_n tom_n 2._o cap._n de_fw-fr adversarijs_fw-la fol._n 154._o as_o certain_a it_o be_v say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o god_n so_o certain_a be_v it_o that_o luther_n be_v a_o devilish_a liar_n the_o devyne_n of_o heidelberg_n against_o luther_n 9_o theologi_fw-la palatini_n in_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la in_o admonitione_n de_fw-la lib._n concordiae_fw-la bergensis_fw-la cap._n 9_o the_o catechesme_n say_v they_o of_o luther_n and_o brentius_n let_v they_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o write_n let_v they_o have_v no_o authority_n again_o neither_o it_o be_v fit_a say_v they_o that_o luther_n shall_v be_v prefer_v or_o allege_v against_o all_o ancient_a writer_n or_o late_a or_o according_a to_o his_o writing_n give_v sentence_n upon_o all_o thing_n much_o less_o to_o condemn_v all_o those_o of_o heresy_n that_o do_v not_o agree_v or_o consent_v with_o he_o for_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n say_v they_o have_v acknowledge_v as_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n as_o have_v live_v in_o former_a age_n neither_o do_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o late_a give_v authority_n to_o the_o elder_a but_o rather_o the_o elder_a to_o the_o late_a and_o therefore_o the_o ancient_a writer_n may_v be_v oppose_v against_o the_o adversary_n and_o not_o luther_n or_o such_o like_a ibid._n ibid._n also_o for_o as_o much_o as_o luther_n be_v not_o a_o prophet_n or_o elias_n or_o a_o evangelist_n see_v he_o have_v err_v in_o many_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o supper_n he_o have_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o a_o rule_n but_o a_o old_a opynion_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o invention_n of_o school_n man_n when_o as_o there_o be_v find_v many_o crafty_a sentence_n in_o his_o book_n eristicis_fw-la spread_v abroad_o to_o inconsiderat_o slander_n reproach_n also_o many_o thing_n idle_o and_o very_o arrogant_o speak_v with_o out_o all_o piety_n and_o modesly_a scoffinge_a jest_n in_o weighty_a matter_n player_n frumpte_n and_o unpleasant_a jest_n and_o also_o many_o thing_n bitter_o and_o injurious_o write_v not_o only_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n against_o learned_a holy_a and_o innocent_a man_n but_o also_o contumelious_a against_o great_a prince_n and_o altogether_o unworthy_a the_o person_n of_o a_o christian_a devyne_a for_o the_o cause_n say_v they_o luther_n book_n and_o sentence_n ought_v not_o ought_v not_o i_o say_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n or_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n these_o they_o the_o 51._o article_n the_o death_n of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n luther_n say_v first_o of_o be_v own_o write_n before_o all-thing_n say_v he_o i_o do_v beseech_v the_o reader_n that_o these_o thing_n he_o read_v with_o judgement_n 243._o in_o praefat_fw-la operum_fw-la lat_fw-la tom_fw-mi 1._o in_o genes_n cap._n 19_o fol._n 243._o yea_o with_o great_a commiseration_n and_o let_v he_o know_v that_o once_o i_o be_v a_o monk_n yea_o i_o myself_o say_v he_o do_v hate_v my_o own_o book_n and_o often_o time_n do_v wish_v they_o to_o perish_v this_o he_o speak_v the_o year_n before_o his_o death_n again_o how_o often_o say_v he_o have_v my_o hart_n pant_v missae_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2_o germ_n lentae_fw-la fol_z 9_o &_o praefat_fw-la lib._n the_o abrog_n missae_fw-la and_o reprehend_v i_o and_o object_v against_o i_o what_o be_v thou_o only_a wise_n can_v it_o be_v credible_a that_o all_o other_o do_v err_v and_o have_v err_v so_o long_a a_o time_n have_v all_o generation_n so_o often_o be_v deceive_v what_o if_o thou_o do_v err_v and_o bring_v so_o many_o into_o error_n that_o shall_v be_v damn_v forever_o supra_fw-la in_o colloq_fw-la mensal_n fol._n 10._o &_o praefat_fw-la supra_fw-la moreover_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o be_v thou_o only_o he_o that_o have_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n have_v no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n thesame_n but_o thou_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v hither_o to_o define_v and_o so_o many_o year_n observe_v as_o good_a do_v thou_o over_o throw_v it_o as_o though_o it_o be_v evil_a and_o so_o dissipate_v by_o thy_o doctrine_n all_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a common_a weal_n i_o never_o put_v say_v he_o these_o thought_n and_o cogitation_n forth_o of_o my_o mind_n that_o be_v that_o this_o work_n and_o business_n he_o mean_v his_o apostasy_n have_v never_o be_v begin_v by_o i_o for_o what_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o man_n have_v i_o deceive_v by_o my_o doctrine_n i_o never_o have_v a_o great_a and_o a_o more_o grievous_a temptation_n therefore_o my_o preach_n because_o say_v he_o i_o think_v with_o myself_o thou_o have_v stir_v up_o all_o this_o tumult_n in_o which_o temptation_n i_o have_v be_v drow_v even_o to_o hell_n itself_o again_o because_o i_o have_v enter_v into_o this_o cause_n say_v he_o now_o i_o must_v look_v unto_o it_o and_o of_o necessity_n say_v it_o be_v just_a if_o you_o ask_v a_o reason_n doctor_n luther_n will_v have_v it_o so_o sic_fw-la volo_fw-la sic_fw-la tubeo_fw-la sit_fw-la pro_fw-la ratione_fw-la voluntas_fw-la so_o i_o will_v so_o i_o command_v it_o let_v my_o will_v stand_v for_o a_o reason_n for_o we_o will_v not_o be_v scholar_n but_o master_n and_o judge_n of_o papist_n yea_o we_o will_v once_o proteruire_n &_o insultare_fw-la be_v malapert_a and_o insult_v over_o they_o i_o doctor_n martin_n luther_n say_v he_o a_o unworthy_a evangelist_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v say_v and_o affirm_v this_o article_n say_v a_o lone_a with_o out_o work_n do_v justify_v before_o god_n the_o roman_a emperor_n shall_v suffer_v it_o to_o stand_v and_o remain_v the_o emperor_n of_o the_o turk_n the_o emperor_n of_o the_o tartar_n the_o emperor_n of_o the_o persian_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n cardinal_n bishop_n
priest_n 241._o in_o colloquijs_fw-la mensal_n fol._n 241._o tom_n 5._o germ._n fol._n 241._o monk_n nun_n prince_n lord_n the_o whole_a will_v withal_o devil_n i_o say_v shall_v permit_v it_o and_o moreover_o they_o shall_v have_v hell_n fire_n over_o their_o head_n and_o i_o will_v give_v they_o no_o thanks_o for_o their_o pain_n let_v this_o be_v my_o instinct_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o doctor_n luther_n and_o my_o true_a and_o holy_a gospel_n death_n of_o luther_n lutheri_fw-la cochleus_n in_o vita_fw-la lutheri_fw-la luther_n be_v take_v away_o by_o a_o subdayn_a death_n for_o when_o he_o have_v be_v joyful_a and_o well_o at_o a_o rich_a supper_n and_o by_o his_o merry_a conceit_n have_v provoke_v his_o friend_n to_o much_o laughter_n that_o same_o very_a night_n he_o die_v death_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la oecolompadius_fw-la gualther_n say_v 32._o in_o apologia_fw-la pro_fw-la zulnglio_n etc._n etc._n fol._n 32._o zuinglius_fw-la die_v in_o war_n against_o catholic_n and_o arm_v in_o the_o field_n and_o these_o our_o excellent_a censurer_n say_v he_o doubt_v not_o to_o pronounce_v zuinglius_fw-la himself_n to_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o therefore_o the_o son_n of_o hell_n and_o a_o little_a after_o at_o basil_n 1531._o cochleus_n in_o act_v lutheri_fw-la 1531._o his_o spiritual_a brother_n oecolampadius_n be_v well_o at_o night_n when_o he_o go_v to_o bed_n be_v find_v the_o newt_n morning_n dead_a by_o his_o wife_n also_o andreas_n corolostadius_fw-la be_v slay_v by_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o basil_n write_v in_o a_o epistle_n which_o they_o publish_v of_o his_o death_n death_n of_o caluin_n conradus_n schlusselburge_n a_o lutheran_n superintendent_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o ruceburge_n 72._o io_o theolog._n caluinista_n l._n 2._o fol._n 72._o and_o general_a overseer_n and_o controller_n of_o the_o ad_fw-la join_v church_n of_o megaplensis_n say_v god_n in_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o fury_n visit_v call_a do_v horrible_o punish_v he_o before_o the_o fearful_a hour_n of_o his_o unhappy_a death_n for_o he_o so_o strike_v this_o heretic_n so_o he_o term_v he_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n with_o his_o mighty_a hand_n that_o eat_v both_o himself_o and_o all_o his_o 12.23_o bolsecus_fw-la cochlaeus_fw-la &_o alij_fw-la oculares_fw-la testes_fw-la 2._o machab._n 9_o 5.9.10_o and_o act._n 12.23_o detest_a god_n and_o the_o day_n of_o his_o birth_n despair_v with_o horrible_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o saint_n and_o call_n upon_o the_o devil_n so_o breathe_v out_o his_o soul_n he_o die_v say_v conradus_n be_v consume_v by_o louse_n and_o worm_n a_o kind_n of_o death_n wherewith_o god_n do_v often_o strike_v the_o wicked_a as_o he_o do_v antiochius_n in_o the_o macchabee_n and_o herod_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n increase_a in_o a_o most_o loath_a some_o ulcer_n about_o his_o privy_a part_n so_o as_o none_o present_a can_v endure_v the_o stench_n the_o thing_n be_v object_v to_o caluin_n by_o publyke_a writing_n in_o which_o also_o horrible_a thing_n be_v declare_v concern_v his_o lasciviousness_n his_o sundry_a abominable_a vice_n and_o sodomitical_a lust_n for_o which_o last_o he_o be_v by_o the_o magistrate_n at_v noyon_n under_o who_o he_o live_v brand_v on_o the_o shoulder_n with_o a_o hot_a burn_a iron_n whereunto_o as_o yet_o i_o see_v no_o sound_n or_o clear_a answer_n here_o dear_a mother_n i_o have_v make_v a_o summarie_a collection_n of_o what_o soever_o i_o can_v imagine_v to_o make_v for_o your_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n as_o the_o happiness_n of_o your_o own_o with_o the_o soul_n of_o your_o whole_a family_n and_o friend_n for_o all_o eternity_n not_o dilate_v or_o make_v any_o application_n of_o the_o least_o article_n but_o rather_o leave_v all_o to_o your_o discreet_a judgement_n to_o comment_n upon_o so_o plain_a evident_a and_o perspicuous_a atext_n where_o you_o may_v as_o the_o darkness_n of_o egypt_n even_o feel_v the_o truth_n with_o your_o hand_n this_o course_n i_o have_v the_o rather_o embrace_v to_o avoid_v tediousness_n in_o so_o copious_a a_o matter_n and_o where_o that_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n may_v most_o apt_o be_v apply_v â2_n luke_n 19_o v._o â2_n by_o thy_o own_o mouth_n i_o judge_v thou_o o_o naughty_a servant_n our_o earnest_a prayer_n and_o whole_a devotion_n night_n and_o day_n for_o a_o good_a success_n amen_n but_o for_o your_o last_o farewell_n take_v this_o sentence_n of_o s._n augustine_n upon_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n julianum_fw-la lib._n 2_o contra_fw-la julianum_fw-la those_o bishop_n say_v he_o be_v learned_a grave_a holy_a most_o earnest_a defender_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o truth_n against_o all_o tattle_a vanity_n in_o who_o sentence_n learning_n liberty_n etc._n etc._n thou_o can_v not_o despise_v any_o thing_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la again_o the_o ancient_a father_n say_v he_o seek_v not_o friendship_n either_o with_o we_o or_o you_o nor_o yet_o be_v at_o enmytie_n with_o either_o of_o we_o with_o we_o or_o you_o they_o be_v not_o offend_v neither_o we_o nor_o you_o do_v they_o pity_v but_o what_o they_o find_v in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o hold_v what_o they_o have_v learned_a that_o they_o teach_v what_o themselves_n have_v learn_v of_o their_o fore_a father_n thesame_n they_o deliver_v to_o their_o child_n these_o that_o best_a most_o worthy_a learned_a confess_v as_o cal._n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o 3._o troâtysc_n confess_v and_o sincere_a witness_n of_o all_o antiquity_n yet_o that_o ever_o be_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o be_v like_a to_o follow_v after_o he_o s._n austin_n whereby_o you_o may_v collect_v that_o these_o father_n aught_v only_o what_o they_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n from_o the_o apostle_n yea_o christ_n himself_o contrariwyse_o you_o the_o fancy_n of_o their_o own_o brainsick_a invention_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o i_o mean_v in_o frame_a a_o religion_n of_o so_o many_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n compose_v into_o one_o never_n before_o hold_v by_o any_o one_o particular_a person_n dear_a mother_n brethren_n and_o sister_n with_o the_o rest_n my_o good_a friend_n once_o more_o i_o humble_o take_v my_o leave_n of_o you_o heseech_v you_o all_o to_o make_v some_o good_a use_n of_o these_o my_o pain_n for_o undoubted_o if_o they_o turn_v not_o to_o your_o good_a they_o will_v much_o damage_v you_o and_o that_o through_o your_o own_o default_n for_o what_o say_v our_o saviour_n if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o 2d_o john_n 15_o 2d_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v sin_v but_o now_o they_o have_v no_o excuse_n for_o their_o sin_n so_o plain_o be_v this_o matter_n make_v unto_o you_o wherefore_o i_o pray_v let_v not_o i_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o increase_v your_o sin_n and_o consequent_o your_o future_a torment_n far_o well_o finis_fw-la